Classic Audiobook Collection - Napoleon and Josephine The Rise of the Empire by Walter Geer ~ Full Audiobook [biography]
Episode Date: December 14, 2023Napoleon and Josephine The Rise of the Empire by Walter Geer audiobook. Genre: biography FOREWORD: 'In the popular estimation the Empress Josephine is crowned with a halo of goodness which makes the ...task of her biographer one of peculiar difficulty. The aversion which many feel towards Napoleon is not a little due to what they conceive to be the cruelty with which he treated the woman who for fourteen years was the companion of his glory. The writer of this book holds no brief either for the prosecution or the defence. He wants to draw a portrait - not to pronounce a judgment: his object is to depict Josephine as she was, and he leaves the reader to decide as to her goodness.' Walter Geer For ad-free listening try our premium subscription Chapters (Approximate) (00:00:00) Chapter 01 (00:37:29) Chapter 02 (01:10:01) Chapter 03 (01:49:08) Chapter 04 (02:27:09) Chapter 05 (02:54:42) Chapter 06 (03:34:09) Chapter 07 (04:03:46) Chapter 08 (04:43:26) Chapter 09 (05:07:19) Chapter 10 (05:31:54) Chapter 11 (06:09:16) Chapter 12 (06:45:24) Chapter 13 (07:22:26) Chapter 14 (07:54:23) Chapter 15 (08:33:38) Chapter 16 (09:07:19) Chapter 17 (09:40:35) Chapter 18 Learn more about your ad choices. Visit megaphone.fm/adchoices
Transcript
Discussion (0)
Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear
1
1763 to 1779
Early years of Josephine
On the outer rim of the Caribbean Sea
In the middle of the chain of the lesser Antilles
between the British possessions of Dominica and St. Lucia
lies Martinique, the birthplace of Josephine.
The island is only 40 miles long by 20 wide
and its area of less than 400 square miles makes it about a third the size of the smallest state in the Union.
A cluster of volcanic mountains in the north, a similar group in the south,
and a line of lower heights between them form the backbone of the island.
The deep ravines and precipitous escarpments culminating on the north in the Massif of Montpellier
are reduced in appearance to gentle undulations by the drapery of the forests.
The few miles of country between the watershed and the sea are traversed by
numerous streams, of which nearly fourscore are of considerable size and in the rainy season
become raging torrents. At the southerly end, a lateral range branching from the backbone of the
island, forms a blunt peninsula bounding on the south the beautiful low-shored bay of Fault de France,
on which is located the city of the same name, formerly known as Farr Royale, the capital of the
island. On this peninsula directly across the bay from the capital is the little hamlet of
Troise I Le, where Josephine was born.
By some authorities, Martinique is said to have been discovered by Columbus in 1493, the year of
his second voyage, but it was not until 1635 that possession was taken by the French,
Company des Isles of America. During the next hundred years, Martinique had a full share of wars.
It experienced several revolutions of different kinds, and was attacked on numerous
occasions by the British and the Dutch, but always without success.
It was finally captured, however, by Rodney in 1762,
and was only returned to France by the Treaty of Paris in the following year,
a few days before the birth of Josephine.
Like Napoleon, therefore, she had a narrow escape from not being born under the French flag.
In 1726, there landed in Martinique a noble of Blois,
named Gaspar Joseph Taché de la Pagery,
who, like many others, came to seek his fortune.
He belonged to an old family which,
could trace its origin back at least to the middle of the 15th century. His great-grandfather
had established himself in Blois in 1650, after having sold his seigneurie of La Pagery, of which,
however, his descendants continued to use the name. His grandfather, retired with the great
of Captain of Cavalry, exhausted his last resources in 1674 in recruiting a squadron of
the noblesse of Blois. He left only one son, Gaspar, who, in spite of his good marriages, did not
succeed in restoring the family fortunes.
Gaspar left two sons, of whom the younger rose to considerable prominence in the church.
The elder named Gaspar Joseph after his grandfather was a Mouvezsche.
To escape a life of genteel poverty at home, he decided to try his fortunes in the new world.
Little is known of the early years of his life in Martinique, but four years after his arrival,
he presented to the Council a request to have his titles registered in order to
preserve his rights and privileges as a member of the noblesse.
On account of the many formalities, and the delays in hearing from France, this matter dragged
along over a period of fifteen years. In the meantime, in 1734, he married a young woman of good
if not noble family, who brought him a considerable dot. He was not at all successful in his
business ventures, however, and was finally obliged to take a clerical position. By his marriage, he had
five children, two sons and three daughters. But we are only interested in the elder son,
Joseph Gaspar, and the eldest daughter, Desiree. In 1752, Joseph Gaspar, who was then
17 years of age, left Martinique to take a position as page in the household of the Dauphin,
Mary Joseph of Saxony, the mother of the future King Louis XVI. This place had been secured for him
by the Abbey de Taché. After passing three years in France,
he returned to Martinique with a brevet commission as Souleutnant in the Navy.
At this time, 30 years after the arrival of Gaspar-Josef on the island,
the family was living in a state of abject misery without money or a social position.
In April 1755, in a period of entire peace between the two nations,
an English fleet of ten vessels under the command of Admiral Boscoen
captured two French battleships near the south coast of Newfoundland.
It soon became evident that plans had been laid by the British government to attack all the French colonies.
In this emergency, the King Louis XVI had need in the islands of an officer of force and intelligence,
and on the 1st of November 1756, he appointed Francois de Boernet as governor and lieutenant-general of all the French possessions in the West Indies.
The new governor, although only 42 years of age, had a record of 27 years of distinguished service,
in the Navy. Notwithstanding the fact that most of this period was passed at Rochefort his native
place, and that he had seen no active service, he was very highly esteemed for the efficiency
with which he had always discharged the duties of his various positions.
Monsieur de Boarnet, who was not made a marquis until eight years later, belonged to a family
of the noblest de la robe, rather than of the sword. He was the eldest son of a naval captain,
Claude and of a mademoiselle Arduino, whose mother had married for her second husband,
the then Marquis de Boernet. As nephew of one and grandson of the other, he was later to bear the
title and to succeed to the Hotel in the Rue Tivno in Paris, where the Marquis died in 1749.
When Francois de Boarnet landed in Martinique as governor in May 1757, he was accompanied by his
young wife, whom he had married six years before. She was his cousin. She was his cousin.
and had brought him a large dot. He also had a small income of his own which he had inherited from a
bachelor uncle. They had had two sons, of whom only one was then living, Francois, born the previous
year. What possible point of contact could there be between this Grand Seigneur, arriving as master
in Martinique, rich with his income of 100,000 and his salary of 150,000 livres, and these
taché living in misery in a corner of the island?
as above stated gaspar joseph had three daughters and in some unknown way he was successful in obtaining for the eldest deseres a position in the household of the governor as an upper servant or de mozelle de
once installed in the mansion it did not take her long to secure a dominating influence over the governor and his wife and her favor was in no way diminished by her marriage to an ordinance officer of monsieur de beau arneux alexe renaudin a young man of good family and connections
but it required all of the authority of the governor to arrange the matter as the renaudin objected strongly to the match not so much on account of the lack of dot as because of the general discredit of the tachet
finally m renaudin per died and the mother gave a reluctant consent after her marriage the power of the young madame renaudin seemed to increase from day to day
a good husband was found for one of her younger sisters a command in the militia for her father and a place on the governor's staff for her brother the administration of m de beauarnet proved a failure
charges of such gravity were made against him in france that he was recalled from his government and only saved from disgrace by the influence of powerful friends at home by this time his infatuation for madame renaudin was so great that he was reluctant to leave martinique and the interesting condition of his wife served as an excuse
on the twenty eighth of may seventeen sixty another son was born who received the name of alexandre still monsieur de bourne lingered on the island
and it was not until the month of April in the following year that he and his wife finally sailed for France with the inseparable Madame Renaudin in their suite.
In order not to expose the young Alexandre to the hazards of the voyage, he was left behind in charge of Madame Tachet, Mere.
Before the departure of Monsieur de Boerner, he arranged yet another marriage for the Taché family,
and on the 9th of November 1761, Joseph Gaspar, the former page of the doffine, led to the altar Mademoiselle Rose Clare.
She was descended from the old nobleness of Brie and belonged to one of the most highly considered families in the colony.
Roseclair, who was born in August 1736, had already passed her 25th birthday and was very glad to find a husband.
The marriage which was celebrated before the Curie of Troisilet was not honored by the presence of any of the dignitaries of the colony.
Even the father of the groom was not present for some unknown reason.
From this marriage there was born on the 23rd of June 1763, a daughter, who, five weeks later, received in baptism the names of Marie-Joseph Rose.
This was Josephine.
During the three following years, Madame de la Pagre had two more daughters.
Desiree, born the 11th of December, 1764, who died at the age of 13, and Francoise, born the 3rd of September, 1666, who died at the age of 25.
At this point we find a confusion in the records which is not easy to explain.
Under the date of the 5th of September 1791, there is an entry of the burial of Marie-Joseph Rose.
There is also an existence a document of questionable authenticity from which it would appear
that a Demoiselle Taché gave birth the 17th of March, 1786, to a daughter who was adopted
by Madame de la Pagery, and was given a dot of 60,000 francs by the Emperor Napoleon 22 years later
on the occasion of her marriage.
In the certificate of baptism of this child,
the mother may have borrowed the name of her sister Josephine,
who was certainly in France at that date,
and the same name quite naturally might be used in her burial certificate.
In any case, there is no possible doubt
as to the personality of Marie-Joseph Rose,
nor as to the date of her birth.
But this confusion of names and dates
enabled Josephine when she wished to appear younger
at the time of her second marriage
to claim that she was born in 1766.
The Treaty of Paris, which ended the struggle between England and France,
was signed on the 10th of February 1763,
but the news did not reach Martinique until the end of the following month.
The French fleet, charged with taking possession of the island,
arrived the middle of June,
and the white banner of the bourbons was hoisted once more,
just a week before the birth of Josephine.
In the meantime in France, Monsieur de Boernet,
through the support of powerful friends at court,
had succeeded not only in having suppressed
the record of his unsuccessful administration,
but in securing a pension of 12,000 livres,
the rank of chef Descadre,
and the title of Marquis.
At the same time, he also obtained a small pension
for Monsieur de la Pagery.
Madame Renaudin, after passing a short time in a convent,
openly took up her residence with the Marquis
both in the city and the country,
and his wife, who seems, for a long time,
have been blind to their relationship, left Paris to live near her mother at Blois.
From time to time she made short visits to the city, and it was on one of these occasions that
she died in October 1767. Madame Renaudet was now in full control of the situation, and to
consolidate her power she began to lay plans for the future. The pension of 450 livres,
which Monsieur de la Pagery had obtained from the court, proved very useful when he was practically
ruined by the great storm of August 1766, which combined with an earthquake, devastated
Mertinique, throwing down houses and destroying plantations. On the Taché estate, nothing was left
standing except the sugar refinery, to which the family fled for shelter. In this building,
altered so as to make it habitable, the family continued to live for the next 25 years.
Obna visited the place in the middle of the last century, when it was not much changed since the days
of Josephine's childhood.
The village, Troisilet, then contained about 50-frame houses,
and a small church in which was the family vault of the taché.
The plantation was located about a mile beyond the town,
and the description of Obina is interesting.
The homestead is situated on a slight eminence
surrounded by larger hills, only a few steps from the sea,
although it is out of sight and even out of hearing.
From the extent of the building still standing,
and the ruins which the eye can make out,
It is possible to judge the former importance of the estate,
one of the largest in this once-flourishing quarter of the island.
The dwelling-house, originally constructed on a large scale,
has become since the storm of 1766 a simple wooden structure.
Next comes the sugar mill with its circle of heavy pillars
and its huge roof of red tiles of native manufacture.
A few paces from the mill is the refinery,
a large building over 40 yards long by 20 wide.
On looking at the monumental solidity of this structure,
it is possible to understand how it withstood the terrible storm.
During the years which followed,
the building was adapted to shelter the Taché family.
A low gallery was added on the southern side,
and rooms were fitted up in the upper part
until a new dwelling house could be erected.
Built on the slope of the hill were the huts of the Negroes,
and round about were the sheds and other buildings used
in the manufacture of the sugar.
Amid such surroundings, the future Empress and Queen
passed the years of her childhood, with no society
except that of the slaves, and no culture, intellectual, or moral.
When she was ten years of age, she was sent to the
School of the Dame de la Providence at Farr Royal, where she remained
four years. Her education was then thought to be complete,
and she returned to Troisilet. In fact, she had received a little
more than a primary school training with a few lessons in music and
dancing. At this time, Josephine was far from being the finished coquette that she became
later on. She had a good complexion, fine eyes, pretty hands and feet, but her face was full without
marked traits, her nose relever and ordinary, her figure heavy and ungraceful. Her mind was
hardly cultivated, but to the convent she owed at least quite an elegant penmanship, with an
orthography not much worse than that of most of her contemporaries. She had a slender voice and
sang to the accompaniment of a guitar.
In character, she was very sweet, submissive to authority, very amiable, always ready to do anyone a favor.
And such she remained all her life.
While Josephine was passing her childhood at Troisilet, the boy Alexandre de Boernet was living at Fort Royal with the elder Madame Taché.
It was not until two years after the death of his mother towards the end of the year 1769 that his father arranged to have him brought back to France.
at that time he was nine years of age there is a record of his baptism under date of fifteenth of january seventeen seventy on the parish registers of the church of st
his godmother was the haute and puissant dame marie euphemy deseret tachie de la pagerie espouse de monotin and cuier ence major de lille de lille de st lucy in order to complete his education which had been much neglected alexandre was placed with his brother in the college
Duplessie, founded by the great Cardinal Richelieu, which at that time was the rival of Louis
Le Grand at Paris. Later, the boys were sent for two years with their tutor Patricol
to the University of Heidelberg to learn the German language. In 1774, Francois entered the army,
and Patricol was engaged by the Duke de la Roche Foucault as preceptor for the two sons of his
sister, Rowan Chabot, and he took Alexandre with him. It thus happened that the most
impressionable years of the boy's life were passed in the Duccochateau of Roche Guillon.
During all these years, Madame Renaudain never lost sight of him.
She made every effort to secure over the son the same influence which she exercised over the father.
In the plans which she had formed for the future, Alexandre held the principal role.
The resources of the Marquis were very limited, and the expenses of the household were paid
largely from the income of the fortune which the boy had inherited from his mother.
This money Madame Renaudet intended, if possible, to keep in the family.
2. 1779 to 1790. Marriage and separation.
When Alexander de Boernet was 16 years of age in December 1776, he received, through the favor
of the Duke de la Roche Foucault, a commission as sous-leutnant in his regiment of the Sarre Infantry.
At this time, he abandoned the courtesy title of Chevalier, then given
to the younger sons of noble families,
and assumed that of vicomte,
to which he had no valid claim.
Dressed in his handsome new uniform
of white cloth with facings of silver-gray,
the young vicomte proceeded to Rouen
where his regiment had just arrived in garrison.
Here he went through his military exercises
and perfected himself in mathematics and horsemanship.
At this time he was far from thinking of marriage,
but he did not know the plans of that high and mighty dame his godmother.
When he returned home to pass a six-month's leave of absence,
Madame Renaudin played her cards so well
that Alexandre readily assented to her ideas
in order more quickly to enjoy his fortune.
On the 23rd of October 1777,
the Marquis wrote the following letter to Monsieur de la Pagery.
Each of my children has at present an income of forty thousand livres.
It is in your power to give me one of your daughters
to share the fortune of my chevalier.
the respect and attachment which he has for Madame de Renaudin make him ardently desire to be united to one of her nieces.
I assure you that I only acquiesced in his wishes in asking you for the second whose age is the most suitable for him.
I deeply regret that your eldest daughter is not a few years younger.
She certainly would have had the preference, for I have formed an equally favorable opinion of her.
But I must admit that my son, who is only seventeen and a half years old, thinks that a young lady of fifth,
is too nearly of his own age.
There are occasions when sensible parents are forced to yield to circumstances.
As Alexander, besides the income of forty thousand livres from the estate of his mother,
had expectations of twenty-five thousand more, the Marquis did not request Monsieur de la Pagre to
furnish any dot.
He only asked that the father make haste to bring his daughter to France, or if he could not
come himself, to send her with a trustworthy companion by a commercial vessel, as she would
have a more comfortable and agreeable voyage.
When this letter of the Marquis reached Martinique, the second daughter of Monsieur de la Pagery
Desire was dead of a malignant fever at the age of thirteen, and the youngest daughter,
Francoise, was not yet twelve years old. In January the father writes that, in default of the
second daughter, he is willing to offer the third, but that it would be better to accept
the first. He says that she, Josephine, has a very fine complexion and very beautiful arm,
and that she is very anxious to go to Paris.
Madame Renaudin's plan was that Alexandre should marry one of her nieces.
She did not care whether it was the youngest or the oldest.
Therefore, without wasting time in vain regrets over the death of Desiree,
she wrote her brother in March 1778,
Come with one of your girls or two.
Whatever you do will be agreeable to us.
We must have one of your children.
In reply to this letter, Monsieur de la Pagery wrote
the last of June, that his youngest daughter had been ill for three months and was in no
condition to travel, and that he would bring Josephine. When received in September, this
information was communicated to Alexandre, who was then stationed with his regiment near breast,
and he accepted the substitution with good grace, though with little enthusiasm. Before
Monsieur de la Pagery could sail, however, France and England were again at war, and his departure
was delayed for more than a year. Finally, in October's
1779, Madame Renaudin received a letter from her brother, announcing that he and his daughter
had arrived at Brest after a terrible voyage, and that he was detained there by illness.
She at once set out with Alexandre to join them.
This was the first encounter between Alexandre and Josephine since their childhood days,
as she was only six years old when he left Martinique.
To judge by his letters to his father at this time, he was far from enthusiastic over his
Creole fiancée. He said that she was not as pretty as his father might expect, but that the
sweetness of her character surpassed anything that had been said of her.
The party of four traveled slowly to Paris, where they arrived the middle of November,
and joined the Marquis in his hotel, Rue Tavenot, where he was just installed.
The Bands had already been published three times in Martinique in April, and they were now
published again in Paris. Madame Renaudet had once occupied herself with Ormondo
ordering the trousseau, for which she expended the large sum of twenty thousand livres.
On the tenth of December the contract was signed at the hotel of the marquis in the presence
of all the male members of the family, no ladies being present.
Of the family of the bride there was present, aside from Monsieur de la Pagri and his sister,
only a very distant cousin.
As Alexandre had so large an income, the Marquis did not make any settlement on him at the time
of the marriage. The dot of the bride was furnished
by her aunt. Besides the trousseau already mentioned, Madame Renaudin gave her a house at Noisee
Le Grand in the vicinity of Paris, which she had purchased in October 1776 for the sum of 33,000
livres, and had furnished at a further cost of about 30,000 livres. To use the expression
commonly employed by ladies in those days, and perhaps since, when they did not care to state
from what source their money was derived, these funds were doubtless the proceeds of her diamonds.
three days after the signing of the contract on the thirteenth of december seventeen seventy nine the marriage was celebrated in the church at noisie in the presence of nearly the same persons who witnessed the signing of the contract no woman signed the register
immediately after the marriage the young couple took up their residence in the sombre hotel of the marquis in paris for the young creole it was a sad change from the brilliant sunshine the entire liberty and the dolce farniante
of the Antilles.
The Boernet had few friends in Paris,
and Josephine had not even an acquaintance.
In the spring,
Alexandre returned to his regiment at Prest,
and Josephine remained in Paris with her father-in-law,
her aunt and her father, who was still ill.
Returning to Paris,
when his regiment was ordered to Verdun,
Alexandre made no effort to introduce his wife in society.
He thought her awkward and ignorant.
Even worse, she seemed to him plain,
devoid of grace and tournure with ridiculous ideas of conjugal love, tenderness and jealousy.
He had married to be free to enjoy his fortune, and he had no intention of being tied down to his wife.
It was difficult enough to secure entry to the court for himself alone, and he owed his position there
mainly to the fact that he was a fine dancer. He could never hope to introduce a wife who had
neither money nor friends nor social position. In fact, despite the legends to the contrary,
Josephine was never presented at the court of Marie Antoinette.
While Alexandre visited from Chateau to Chateau,
his wife continued to lead the same, quiet, uneventful life at Noisy or at Paris.
On the 3rd of September, 1781,
she gave birth in the Hotel Rue Tavenot to a son,
who the following day was baptized in the Church of Saint-Sauver,
and received the name of Eugenne.
The 1st of November, Alexandre left Paris for a trip to Italy,
from which he did not return until the end of July.
For a short time after his return,
he was more attentive to his wife,
but the improvement in their relations did not last long.
One who knew him well has said that he was
an grand coquetry with les fam,
and such he remained until the end of his life.
Josephine was naturally of a jealous temperament,
and she certainly had reason enough to
Ferd des Céne.
Alexander was hardly back a month in Paris,
before he was thinking of leaving again.
At that time, Monsieur de Bouillet,
the governor of the Windward Islands,
was in France with the object of persuading the government
to authorize an expedition against the English.
Warmly supported by his old patron,
Monsieur de la Roche Foucault, Alexandre, tried,
but in vain to secure the position of aid de Kant to Bouillet.
He was so determined to leave, however,
that on the 26th September 1782,
he sailed for Martinique as a simple volunteer,
having obtained an indefinite leave of absence from the Minister of War.
He arrived at the island in the month of November, but found no chance to distinguish
himself as the war was drawing to a close.
The preliminaries of peace were signed the 20th of January 1783, and all hostilities ceased
in the Ante as soon as the news was received.
On the 10th of April, 1783, a daughter was born to Josephine in the new Hotel of the Marquis
Rue Saint-Chal and was baptized the following day as Othens Eugenie.
In the certificate, the father is described as
Viscont de Boernet, Baron de Beauville,
captain of Regiment de Lassar,
actually in America for the service du Roi.
At that time, it took at least two months for a letter to go from Paris to Martinique,
and Alexander did not receive the news before the middle of June.
After waiting three weeks, he wrote to Josephine as follows.
If I had written you in the first moment of my anger, my pen would have burnt the paper.
But for more than three weeks I know, at least in part, would I wish you to understand.
In spite then of the despair of my soul, the rage which suffocates me, I shall know how to restrain myself.
I shall know how to tell you coldly that you are in my eyes the vilest of human beings.
That my stay here has enabled me to learn of the abominable life you led here,
that I know in the fullest particulars
your intrigue with Monsieur de Be
officer of the Regiment de la Martinique
also that with Monsieur Dash
I know finally the contents of your letters
and I will bring with me one of the presents you made
I do not ask you for repentance
you are incapable of it
a person who while making her preparations
to depart could receive her lover in her arms
when she knows that she is destined for another
has no soul
She is lower than all the Coquine on earth.
What can I think of this last child born more than eight months after my return from Italy?
I am forced to accept it, but I swear by the heaven which enlightens me that it belongs to another,
that it is the blood of a stranger which flows in its veins.
Make your own arrangements accordingly.
Never, never will I put myself in a position to be abused again,
and as you are a woman to impose on the public if we live under the same roof,
have the goodness to retire to a convent as soon as you receive my letter it is my last word and nothing on earth can make me change it i will go to see you on my arrival in paris once only i wish to have a talk with you and to give you something
it is impossible to read this letter without feeling that alexandre at the time sincerely believed that he had been wronged by josephine both before and after their union during his stay in martinique he had begun
begun as usual to courier le fam and had formed a liaison with a young woman who was an enemy of the tachet,
jealous of the fine marriage which Madame Renaudin had arranged for her niece,
and ready to employ all means to disturb the peace of the family.
It was from her that Alexandre obtained the information as to Josephine's early love affairs.
After arranging to meet his mistress in Paris,
Alexander sailed the middle of August and arrived in France six weeks later.
He found awaiting him at the port letters from his father and Madame Renaudin attempting to bring about a reconciliation.
On route for Paris, he wrote Josephine that he was surprised to learn that she was not yet in a convent,
and that his decision was unalterable.
On receiving this letter at Noisy, Josephine rushed to Paris to meet her husband on his arrival,
but Alexandre did not go to his father's house.
Every possible effort was made by the Marquis and Madame Renaudin.
to affect a reconciliation, but the Vicomte remained inflexible.
After a month of fruitless attempts, Josephine retired with her aunt, to the Abbeye de Pantimont,
Rue de Grenel, and early in December began a formal action for separation.
In her complaint, she sets forth in the greatest detail the existence which she has led,
the indifference of her husband, who in nearly three years of married life, has passed less
than ten months with her.
In conclusion, she states the formal refusal.
of her husband to resume their life in common, and files a copy of the letter quoted above,
which constitutes her principal grievance against him.
It is certain that if Alexander had any proofs of the misconduct of Josephine's subsequent
to their marriage, he would not have hesitated at this time to bring them forward.
The allegation regarding Orteans is disproved by a simple examination of the dates.
As for the other charges, 15 months later, he voluntarily and explicitly withdrew them.
In March 1785 he met Josephine in the office of his notary and consented formally to a separation.
All the provisions of this act are greatly to the honor of Josephine and prove conclusively
that there was no basis for the grave charges Alexander had made when under the spell of an ignoble woman.
Josephine was to live where she pleased, to receive from her husband an allowance of 5,000 livres a year,
to have the custody of Eugène until he was five years old.
to keep hortense for whose maintenance her father was to pay one thousand livres quarterly in advance until she was seven years old and fifteen hundred livres after that age alexandre further agreed to pay all the legal expenses of the suit
such was the end of this famous action from which josephine carried off all the honors of war the sojourn of josephine at pontimont was of great advantage to her in every way the abbeye was like an immense furnished hotel of the highest respect
open only to women of the premier distinction, and there Josephine for the first time had an opportunity of meeting women of her own social rank.
She was received as the Vicomtesse de Boernet, an unfortunate irreproachable young woman, the victim of a cruel husband.
For a woman of the world, Josephine already possessed two of the essential requisites.
She was a coquette, and she knew how to lie.
In these two respects, her husband undoubtedly had agreed.
against her. And to these two qualities, Josephine adds, by the faculty of assimilation which is
one of her strongest traits, that physical education which in a new society is to place her in a
class by herself. Little by little a transformation is affected in her personality, which changes
the heavy and awkward creole into a being delicate and suple, a being desirable above all,
who knows how to attract and to hold. From every point of view this retreat of 15 months was
profitable to her. On leaving the Ponteimaux early in 1786, Josephine at 23 years of age,
found herself free, with an income of 9,000 livres for the support of Hortense and herself.
At this time she sold the estate at Noise, and with the proceeds she bought at Fontainebleau a
little house where she went to live with her aunt and the Marquis. They had a few friends in that
locality, and in their society the days passed pleasantly. At that time, the court was a
to practice the strictest economy, and for two years the royal hunt was abandoned.
In September 1786, under the terms of the act of separation, Eugène was sent to his father,
who placed him at school. Hortense was brought home from Shell, where she had been for two years
with a nurse, and was at once inoculated by orders of the Marquis who was a great believer in all
innovations. Abandoned at 23 years by her husband whose liaisons with other women were open
and notorious. Attractive, passionate, extremely coquette, is it probable that Josephine did not
have a lover? Several names have been mentioned in this connection, but we have no proofs. All we know is that in
June 1788, Josephine suddenly sailed for Martinique, taking Orthans with her. None of her biographers
has ever been able to find a satisfactory explanation of this voyage. It has been surmised that it was
either for the purpose of concealing the results of her imprudence, or else was on account of
the pressing need of money. But if the latter, was it not easier to await at Fontainebleau
the remittances of her father, who acted as agent of the Marquis, than to go three thousand miles
in search of them? In default of any documents, we are reduced to conjectures, and with our knowledge
of Josephine can only imagine one of two reasons. Debtes or love? The biographers friendly to Josephine
attribute her journey to the former cause. But it is rather strange that her enemies have not seized
on the fact that Decre, writing by Napoleon's orders in 1807, spoke of, the Demosel of 18 years
who Madame de la Pagery has adopted. Had this girl known as Marie Benacquette Taché de la Pagery been really
only 18 years of age at that time, she must have been born early in 1789, that is to say,
during this visit of Josephine, and not in March 1786, as stated in the document of doubtful
authenticity already mentioned. Therefore, on the ground of date alone, there was no reason why
Marie-Joseph Rose, as stated in the certificate, could not have been the mother instead of
Marie-Francois. Turcan, who is always unfriendly to Josephine, does not hesitate to insinuate
that Josephine had a daughter during this visit to Martinique in 1789, six years after her separate
from her husband, and gives, as his authority, a study of Monsieur Frederic Mason upon
Josephine of Bonaparte, published in the Revue de Paris. This girl, Marie Benacquette,
was married in March 1808 to the private secretary of the Captain General of Martinique,
a Monsieur Blanchet, and her daughter of 60,000 francs, was provided by the emperor, doubtless at the request
of Josephine. The whole episode is a curious one, to say the least.
Whatever her motive may have been,
Josephine was in great haste to leave France
at the earliest possible moment.
Finding on her arrival at Havre
that the government vessel which she had expected to take
could not sail for two weeks,
she engaged passage for Orton sent herself
on a private ship and sailed at once.
The voyage was pleasant and rapid.
Arrived at Mertinique,
Josephine went directly to Troisilet,
where she remained nearly two years.
We have no record of this visit,
but her life must must,
have been very dull. The family was very poor and both her father and her sister Francois were
ill. Her father died in November 1790, two months after Josephine's departure, and her sister,
a year later. End of chapters one and two.
Chapter 3 and 4 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire, by Walter Geer.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
1789 to 1794
The Revolution
On the 5th of May 1789
the States General assembled at Versailles
and Alexandre de Boernet was one of the members
He had presented himself to the noblest of Blois
as a candidate for the place of one of the two deputies
to be elected by that bailiwick
and was chosen almost unanimously
through the influence of Lavoisie
This was the Fermier General Lavoisier
member of the Academy of Sciences
established only twenty years at Blois, he had acquired by his liberality a great popularity.
He was the real head of the Electoral Assembly, of which he was chosen secretary, and it was he
who drafted the Cayet de Leonce.
This memorandum of grievances which Alexander was charged to support was wholly inspired by
the doctrines of Rousseau, and was the most revolutionary of any presented to the king.
Boernet was faithful to his mandate, and on his arrival,
at Versailles, he ranged himself with the minority of the noblesse, the 47, beside
Igourion, La Fayette, L'Littal And the Ducle-Landall, on the night of the 4th of August,
when feudal rights were abolished and every man generously gave away what he did not own,
Alexandre took a leading part. In recognition of his attitude on this occasion, on the 23rd
of November, after the Assembly had moved to Paris, Boernet was chosen one of the three secretaries
with Iguillon as president.
While Alexandre was thus playing one of the principal roles
in the constituent assembly, the island of Martinique was in a state of turmoil.
There was open war between the whites and the blacks.
Taché, the uncle of Josephine, who was commandant of the Port of Fort Royal, was elected mayor.
There was a collision at St. Pierre between the two parties and 15 blacks were killed.
The garrison of Fort Bourbon revolted, and Tachet was made prisoner by the rebel.
The governor was compelled to evacuate not only the capital, but also the forts which defended it.
Complete anarchy reigned on the island.
Josephine was advised by her friends to leave, and she sailed for France on the 4th of September 1790 on the frigate Sonsieble.
Her departure was so hasty that she sailed almost without any changes of clothing,
and during the voyage was thrown upon the charity of the officers of the ship for toilet necessities for herself and Othens.
She landed in France early in November and went directly to Paris, where she lodged at the Hotel
des Asturi, Rue d'Anjou.
At this time, Josephine seems to have made another effort to bring about a reconciliation with her
husband but without success.
Alexandra continued to live at the Hotel of the Duke de la Roche Foucault, and Josephine took an apartment
in the Rue Saint-Dominique.
The summer of 1791, Josephine and her children were with the Marquis and Madame Rollins.
a day at Fontainebleau. Here she learned of the election of her husband as president of the
Assembly on the 18th of June. Two days later occurred the flight of the royal family to Varenne.
The announcement was made by Boarnet in opening the session of Tuesday the 21st of June,
and the assembly remained in permanent session until the afternoon of the following Sunday.
During this period, Alexandre, by force of circumstances, was the personage the most en-vue
in France, the head of all authority.
The king was suspended, and the president of the National Assembly for the moment was sovereign.
When his son Eugen was seen in the streets of Fontainebleau, the people cried,
Voila le dauphin!
It was a strange turn of the wheel of fortune which thus brought face to face the Marquis de Bouillet,
the distinguished soldier of the Antille, the last royal governor who arranged the flight to Varenne,
and this Boernet, who a few years before had vainly solicited the favor of being his aide-de-con.
one had been a valiant soldier whose life had been devoted to his king and country the other had never seen any act of service and his brief existence up to the present time had been a mixture of scandal and futility
in this encounter by the irony of fate it was the veteran who lost and the carpet knight who won the last of september the constituent assembly came to an end as the retiring deputies by an act of rare and imbecile disinterestedness had declared
themselves ineligible for election to the new legislative assembly, they were all forced to retire to
private life.
Alexandra set out at once for Loire-I-Chair, where he was named member of the administration
of the department.
At this time, he bought some national property in the vicinity of Ferte-Beau-Arne, of which he
seemed to consider himself the sole owner since the emigration of his brother.
But the exercise of his new civil duties was brief.
Since the 25th of August, he had been on the rolls of the district.
general staff with the rank of lieutenant-colonel, and early in December he received an order to join
the 21st Division to which he was attached. The former president of the Assembly certainly took
his time about entering upon his military duties, for he remained in the country until the last
of January, and then came to Paris, where he devoted another month to arranging his affairs.
At this time he was successful in securing a pension of 10,000 livres for his aged father.
Finally, he set out for the headquarters at Valenciennes.
When hostilities began in April, he was attached to the Third Corps, commanded by Marischal de Rochambeau in person.
He took part in the first operations, and personally sent to the Military Committee of the Assembly
an account of the route at Monce.
For such distinguished services, Alexandre was promoted the last of May and assigned to the Army
of the North under Marichal Lucnaur.
He continued to correspond with the United.
assembly, to describe the smallest skirmishes, and to give his impressions of events.
He was one of the first to accept the revolution of the 10th of August, and was rewarded
on the 7th of September by being promoted to Major General, and named Chief of Staff of the
New Army in course of formation at Strasbourg. The year 1792 came to an end without the Army
of the Rhine making any forward movement. During the first months of the following year,
Boernet was still in Strasbourg or that vicinity.
his name occurs in no reports the eighth of march he was promoted to be lieutenant-general and on the thirteenth of may when christine was made commander of the army of the north boerne succeeded him as general-in-chief of the army of the rhine
in june after the fall of the gherondin alexander was summoned to paris to succeed bouchot as minister of war this nomination displeased the all-powerful commune of paris which denounced boerne as an aristocrat and he wisely declined
the appointment. By this time, the public was beginning to realize that General Boernet was
more fond of writing than of acting. Mayans was besieged, and the commander of the Army of the Rhine
had something more important to do than to compose addresses. The last of June he finally set
his 60,000 men in motion and advanced on the enemy. As usual, he reported in the greatest
detail the slightest skirmishes, but did nothing to affect the relief of Mayence which after a brave
defense was forced to capitulate on the 23rd of July. He then insulted the heroic defenders of the
city by a proclamation to his army in which he said, no one could expect a surrender so long as
the Republicans had any ammunition or bread. At the same time, he wrote the Jacobin of Strasbourg
that the club ought to demand of the convention the heads of the traitors of Mayans and send
them to the king of Prussia. He then ordered his army to retreat to the lines of Vissambour, and
sent in his resignation, on the ground that, as a member of a proscribed caste, it was his duty
to remove any subject of disquietude from the minds of his fellow citizens.
Without any authorization, he left his army and went to Strasbourg. It was a grave error,
thus, to abandon his post in the face of the enemy, at a moment when Custine was on trial,
Dylan under arrest, and all the generals of noble birth subject to suspicion.
On the 21st of August his resignation was accepted
in terms which for all time must cover his name with a probrium.
He was ordered to retire at once to a distance of 50 miles from the frontier
to a place of residence of which he would inform the convention.
So ended the inglorious military career of Alexandre de Boerne.
From October 1791 to September 1793,
except for visits to her aunt at Fontainebleau,
Josephine passed all her time in her Paris apartment.
Then, on account of the new law regarding suspects,
she found it desirable to have a domicile outside the city
in order to obtain a certificate of civism, good citizenship.
For some unknown reason, instead of using Fontainebleau,
she decided upon Croissy,
a village on the seine about ten miles from Versailles.
Here she subleased a house from Madame Oston,
a Creole friend from St. Lucie,
who lived at Paris in the same hotel,
She said Dominique. She had a daughter of about the same age as Artance and the mothers had become
intimate friends. The 26th of September 1793, the Citoyenne presented herself at the municipality
of Croise to make her declaration, and two days later she was joined by her son Eugène,
who came from his school at Strasbourg. In her declaration there is no mention of Orteans,
but this was probably an oversight. Memoiselle de Vergenne, who passed this summer of 1793 at Croisi,
states that it was then that she made the acquaintance of Ortence, who was three or four years younger
than herself. At this time, Josephine, to prove her civism, placed Artans with her old nurse
Marie-Lanois at Paris, as an apprentice to learn dressmaking, and Eugène was article to one
Couchard, a carpenter, who was the national agent of the commune of Croissy. This attack of civic
fever, however, did not prevent Josephine from seeking society, and extending her acquaintance
among the residents of Croisi.
Among the friends she made at this time were
Chenorrier, through whom she afterwards bought Malmeson,
Mademoiselle de Vergen, who as Madame de Rémusa,
was to be her dame du Palais,
and Real, who was to become
councillor of state, commandant of the Legion of Honour,
comte of the empire.
During the month of January, 1794,
armed with her certificate of civism,
Josephine returned to her apartment in Paris.
Leaving Strasbourg so precipitately
that he had not time to take with him,
his carriages and horses,
Alexandre proceeded directly to his home at Ferté.
From there, he made haste to write the Jacobin Club of Blois
to announce his early visit.
On his first appearance, however, he was greeted with insults.
He made a spirited reply, and thought that he had saved the situation.
Reassured he leased a small house in the city
and endeavored to gain the goodwill of his neighbors.
At the same time, he opened correspondence with his wife.
in the face of their common peril,
a kind of intimacy was established between them.
In the meanwhile, he was elected mayor
of the little commune of Ferti.
But Alexandre was not to enjoy very long
his quiet life in the country.
On the 2nd of March 1794,
by order of the Committee of General Security,
he was arrested and conducted to Paris
where on the 14th of March he was confined in the Carme.
On the 19th of April,
by order of the same committee,
Josephine was also arrested at Croissie, taken to Paris and placed in the same prison.
The old convent of the Church of St. Joseph Descarme, its walls still stained with the blood of the September massacres,
is standing today in the Rue-Vouger, close by the Luxembourg and the Odion.
At that time it was one of the most insanitary prisons of Paris.
It was cold, damp, dirty, infested with vermin, poorly ventilated and badly lighted.
However, the society was excellent, although rather mixed.
Grand seigneur and Grand Dame were mingled promiscuously with domestics and artisans.
There Josephine was thrown again with her husband, and there seems to have been a good understanding between them, but nothing more.
Alexandre conceived a great passion for Delphine de Gustine, while Josephine engaged in a violent flirtation with General Osh, who entered the calm at about the same time.
Every possible effort was made by Alexandre and Josephine to secure their liberty.
Through Egen and Ortense, who were allowed to visit their mother, communication was kept up with the outside world.
Josephine's surly pug-dog Fortuny, which was not noticed in the crowd, carried letters placed under her collar.
The case against Alexandre, however, was too strong for him to hope for acquittal.
His military career, his neglect to relieve Mayans, his desertion of his post,
made a record hard to defend.
On the 22nd of July, he was taken to the conciergerie.
Realizing that it was the end, as he passed Madame de Custine,
he handed her as a farewell present,
an Arab talisman mounted in a ring which he always wore on his finger.
Alexandre faced death bravely.
In those days, if few knew how to live,
all knew how to die.
Without trial, without testimony, without pleadings,
without verdict,
he was hurried to the guillotine in a batch of 55 victims.
It was the fifth Termidor. Four days more.
Four, 1794 to 1795. After the Terror
No words can depict the conditions in Paris during the Great Terror which began in March 1794
and ended with the fall of Robespierre on the 27th of July.
The law of suspects kept the prison's back.
The guillotine was constantly employed.
The whole nation appeared doomed to the scaffold.
The final seven weeks between the 23rd Prairieal, 11th of June,
and the nine Termidaur were horrible.
It was nothing more nor less than a massacre.
In the course of these 45 days,
1,376 heads fell in Paris.
Fear was on every side.
Drawing rooms were empty, wine shops were deserted.
The very cortisans see.
to go to the Palais Royal, where virtue now reigned supreme. The convention was well-nigh
deserted. The deputies had given up sleeping at home. When the head of Robespierre fell under the
guillotine, a mighty shout of joy went up from the one hundred thousand beings massed in the
Place de la Revolution. In the popular estimation, Robespierre had been the incarnation of the
terror, therefore his own downfall meant the end of the terror. No such thought had been in the minds
of Barrace and Talien when they struck down the dictator,
but they were not slow to take advantage of this reaction in public opinion.
The joy of the populace, however,
was nothing in comparison with the delight of the reprieved prisoners
who had been hopelessly awaiting death.
The daily roll call had ceased.
It was never to be heard again.
While the tumbles conveyed to the scaffold the dreaded instruments of the terror,
Fouquier and the judges and jurymen,
the former captives, were daily set free.
At the same time,
a hundred thousand suspects issued from their hiding places. Their joy was beyond words.
It was as if they had risen from the tomb or been born into life again.
Josephine was one of the first of the prisoners to gain her liberty. Ten days after the fall of
Robespierre, on the 19 Termida, 6th of August, she left the calm. One of her companions
and misfortune has drawn a sketch of her behavior in prison which is not wholly flattering.
She was pusillanimous in the highest deal.
degree. She passed her time in telling her fortune with guards and weeping in public to the
great scandal of her companions. But she was naturally affable and does not this trait make us
oblivious to many qualities which are lacking. Her tournure, her manners, her voice above all,
had a particular charm, but it must be admitted that she was neither magnanimous nor frank.
The other prisoners pitied her for her lack of courage. Nevertheless, Josephine was very popular. When
the prisoners heard her name pronounced, they applauded furiously.
With that grace which never left her, she made her adieu to each one and left amidst the good
wishes and blessings of all.
It has been stated that she owed her prompt liberation to Madame de Fontonois, the future
Madame Talien, her companion in prison, but Theresea was confined in La Faust and not at the
calm.
Josephine had other friends, however, who were not less powerful.
Hush, who left his prison on the 4th of August,
Real, Barreere, Talien, to mention only a few of the names.
Talien himself always claimed to the honor, and to him Egein gave the credit at a later date.
But very little is known of the life of Josephine during the twelve months following her release from prison.
As the seals were still attached to her apartment in the rue Saint Dominique, she probably passed the autumn of 1794 in her house at Croissy.
Barras states in his memoir that on leaving the calm she became the mistress.
of Oche. If so, the liaison must have been very brief. Osh was transferred to the conciergerie
the middle of May, and was set free only two days before Josephine. Twelve days later he was
appointed General-in-Chief of the Army of the Coat de Cherbourg, and left Paris to take up his
new command not later than the 1st of September. At this time, he seems to have been very much in
love with his young wife, from whom he had been separated almost immediately after their
marriage in February, by being ordered to the army of Italy and later by his imprisonment.
Admitting that he carried on a lively flirtation with Josephine during the few weeks that they
were thrown together in the calm, it seems much more probable that Osh passed with his bride the
short period that he was in Paris at this time. Furthermore, it is absurd to attempt to draw any
conclusions as to this liaison from the fact that Oche gave Eugen a position on his staff. The general had
been in close relations with Alexandre in the army, and these ties had been drawn closer by their
confinement in the same prison. What then could be more natural than the wish of Osh to relieve
the burden of his friend's widow by assuming the responsibility of her son? This also is his
own explanation of the matter in a letter written to the Marquis two years later, after the second
marriage of Josephine. There is no doubt, however, that during these twelve months, Josephine was in great
financial difficulties. She had on her hands the lease both of her Paris apartment and the house
at Croixie. Her father had left his affairs in great confusion, and the difficulty of getting
money for Martinique was further increased by the war with England. In February 1794, the English
had taken possession of the island, and the Taché estate was in the hands of the enemy. In France,
the property of her husband had been confiscated by the government. The expenses of Josephine's
household at this time were quite heavy. She had three domestics, the nurse, Marie La Noe,
the maid, Agat Rieble, and the valet, officier, Gontier. She not only paid them no wages,
however, but even borrowed their little savings. Her principal resource was a Monsieur Emmerie,
a banker at Dunker, who for many years had had business relations with the taché.
This Emory had been colonel of the National Guard, deputy to the Legislative Assembly,
and mayor of Dunkirk. During the terror he was imprisoned, and only a serious illness saved him from
the guillotine. In the year three, 1794 to 95, he was again elected mayor and resumed his
commerce with the Antilles. For a period of three years he had advanced to Josefine the funds of
which she had need. On the 1st of January 1795, Josephine writes to her mother that without the aid of her
friend Emery. She does not know what would have become of her. She urges Madame Tachet to remit to her
either through London or en Bour, all the funds at her disposal, not merely the income, but also
the capital sum. Her mother seems to have done her best, but the remittance was only moderate
in amount. Josephine then drew on her mother a site draft for £1,000 sterling, writing her at the
same time, how important it was for her to meet the draft, as the money was due to friends who had
already advanced it to her. In the meantime, she succeeded in having the seals removed from her
apartment and recovered possession of her effects. She also managed to have turned over to her
the silver and books left by Alexandre in his country house, and was paid by the government the
sum of ten thousand livres on account of the furniture which had been sold. From these few
details, it is possible to judge how precarious was the life of Josephine during the greater part of
this year. But with the small remittances she received from Martinique, with money she borrowed
on every side, with bills which she contracted everywhere, she somehow managed to exist, and her
life was far from being devoid of luxury. She was not a woman to walk, and must have a carriage,
which she hired by the month. She had not yet worked out the combination by which she obtained in June
1795, from the Committee of Public Safety, a carriage and two horses in exchange for the horses
and equipages which Alexander had left with the Army of the Rhine. She was fond of flowers
and could not live without them. Her toilettes, which were quite modest, included such
items as a piece of muslin at 500 livres, two pairs of silk stockings at 700 livres, and a
shawl at 1,200 livres. But let not the reader be amazed at these figures. A thousand
Livre Assignat then represented only about 53 livres in gold.
At this time, Josephine was on very intimate terms with Madame Talien, the most beautiful
woman of her day.
Theresea was the daughter of Francis Cabarrus, a famous banker and finance minister of Spain.
In 1788, at the age of 14, she was married to the elderly Comte de Fontenoy, a counselor
of the Parliament of Bordeaux.
During the early days of the revolution, her wit and beauty made her a favorite.
in the salons of paris later she attempted with her husband to join her father in spain but they were arrested at bordeaux as suspects at that time talien was exercising all the rigors of the terror in the department of the gerald
he thus met theresea fell in love with her and released fontenois on condition that he should apply for a divorce she then became at first the mistress and later the wife of the proconsul after the reign of terror and the dictatorship of robes
the woman hater, the New Regime found its incarnation in this woman of easy morals.
It is a curious fact that, after her divorce by Talier in 1802, she married Prince de Chimé
and became the mother of a son who espoused Emily, the daughter of Napoleon, and the lovely
Madame Palapra. She was so far as known, the only daughter of the emperor.
There were many points of resemblance between Josephine and Theresea. Both had the same tastes,
the same desires, the same love of luxury.
Neither of them had any moral scruples,
and they were both looking for someone rich enough
to satisfy their caprices.
Husband or lover it mattered little which.
Therizia, who was only 20 years of age at this time,
had the advantage over Josephine both of youth and beauty,
but in grace and charm she could not be compared
with the fascinating Creole.
Teresa was not a woman to be satisfied long with a man like Talien.
She soon found their chomier in the Allie des Vueuve too small a theater for her talents.
Nothing would satisfy her but the rarest flowers, the most exquisite wines,
and toilets which did not cost less from the fact that they were most diaphanous.
From Talien she passed to Badass, who soon turned her over to the rich banker,
Uvrard, all in conservant the privotie that he convien.
In August 1795, when her affairs were still in the same precarious condition,
Josephine leased from Julie Caro, the wife of the actor Talma, from whom she was separated,
a little hotel, Entre Cour and Jardin, at No. 6, Ruchenterenne.
This was a short street recently laid out from the Foubourg Montmartre to the Chosee d'Antain.
It was lined with the residences of Filles Entretneux.
The lease was for three years with privilege of two renewals, and the rent was 10,000 francs in Assignan.
The entrance to the hotel was by a port-corcher,
through a long corridor, at the end of which was a little garden with two small pavilions which
contained the stable and carriage house. In the middle was the house, consisting only of a
riteschouse with an attic above and cellar below. There were five rooms, an antechamber,
a bedroom, a salon which also served as a dining room, another small salon used as a
boudoir, and a wardrobe. The servant's quarters were in the attic. Although small, the house demanded
quite a staff of servants, a porter, a coachman, a chef, and a femme de chambre.
Josephine at this time set up her carriage with two horses, the same which she had obtained from
the government. Before taking possession of her new home, Josephine had spent a very considerable
amount in repairing and adding to the furniture of her apartment in Rue Saint-Dominique.
Nothing, however, was very luxurious. The salon was furnished only with a round mahogany table
and four chairs covered with black horsehair.
On the walls were hung a few prints
framed in dark wood.
It is interesting to note in passing
that this short street,
or rather the locality
where it was afterwards laid out,
was originally known
under the name of La Victoire.
Later the place was called Chantrain
on account of the frogs
which chanted there.
After the campaign of Italy,
it was again called
Rue de la Victoire in honor of Napoleon
and is still known by that name today.
at this time the nurse marie lanois was no longer with josephine as she had placed artance in the new school which madame campan had just founded at st germain she also sent for eugenne whom hush would have been only too glad to keep on his staff and placed him in quite an expensive institution which had just been opened at st germain under the name of the college irelande
the overthrow of robespierre on the nine termidor was due largely to barrace and for the next two years he was perhaps the most prominent man in france for power in itself he cared but little but he greatly enjoyed the advantages derived from it the money the luxury and above all the women
paul barrace was born in provence in seventeen fifty five of a good family in his youth he served as a lieutenant against the british in india in seventeen eighty nine he was chosen a member of the state general and took an active part in the storming of the bastie and the tuileries
the siege of toulon owed its success largely to his activity and energy after the nine termida as president of the convention he acted with decision both against the intrigues of the royalists and the excessive
of the Jacobin.
He was brave, he was a gentleman,
and with much reason he despised
the rabble by whom he was surrounded.
As Lefevre said of Talleyrand,
he was a mess of filth and a silk stocking.
But unlike Talleyran, he had courage,
and when occasion demanded,
did not hesitate to draw the sword
and throw away the scabbard.
It was a curious side of the nature of Barras
that while he associated with the commonest of men,
he wished to have around him only women
of the Ancien regime.
He must have, in his intimate relations,
grace, elegance, and distinction.
He could not expect to find
ladies of the highest rank.
They had all immigrated or died on the scaffold,
but he sought those who, to save their heads
or their fortunes, had compromised themselves
with the leaders of the Popular Party,
and who, with the return of luxury,
were ready to do anything to satisfy their caprices.
He had not money enough to meet their demands
from his own resources,
but he put them in control.
contact with bankers and contractors whom he exploited himself, and whom he permitted them to
exploit in turn. Among this galaxy of pretty woman of loose morals, the bright particular stars
were Theresea and Josephine. Someone must have paid for the new luxury of Josephine, and there
is little doubt that Barras was at this time her lover. He is ungallant enough to say so in
his memoir, and for once he seems to have told the truth. As president of the convention,
member of the Committee of General Security, General-in-Chief of the Army of the Interior,
Barras was really more powerful then than later as a member of the directory.
In July 1795, he returned from a mission to the north.
On the 13 Vandemier, 5th of October, he commanded the troops of the Convention.
On the 1st of November, he became a director, and on the 4th he installed himself at the Luxembourg.
There is a remarkable coincidence between these dates and the dates in the
events in the life of Josephine. On the 17th of August, she signed her lease for the Hotel
Chantrainne. The following month, she sent her children to school. The second of October,
she moved into her new home, and the sixth she gave the orders to furnish luxuriously
her chambre at Coucher. By mid-summer, the liaison was already well-established, and during
the autumn they met frequently at Croissie. We had Madame de Boerne for a neighbor,
writes Pasquay. Her house adjoined our own.
She only came there occasionally once a week to meet Barras with the many persons who followed in his suite.
As is not rare with Creoles, the house of Madame de Boernet had an air of luxury, while the most essential things were lacking.
Chicken, game, rare fruits filled the kitchen, while they came to our humble abode to borrow the kitchen utensils, plates, and glasses which they lacked.
On the 4th of November 1795, the newly elected directors took possession of the Luxembourg, which they lacked.
had been assigned them as an official residence. The palace had been used as a prison during
the revolution, and all of the furniture had mysteriously disappeared. There was no one to receive
them except the concierge, who loaned them for their first meeting at a dilapidated table
in some cane-bottomed chairs. As soon as the salons were refurnished and Barras began to hold
his court, Josephine and Theresea were among the first to appear. This court was made up of women
of the old noblesse, and they are reigned in spite of assertions to the contrary, a very good tone.
A certain cold reserve, rather than the abandon of bad taste, the ladies were nearly all widows
and very few husbands were to be seen. Besides the Luxembourg and her house at Croixie,
Josephine also met Barras at a house which he owned or leased at Chayot, as is shown by a letter
still in existence. The Citoyenne Boernet invites the Citoyen Real to give her the
pleasure of his company for dinner,
Chesel, at her home,
tomorrow the 25th.
The Citoyen, Barras,
and Talier are to be present.
This letter is dated the 24
Pluvius en Kattre,
13 February 1796,
and is written from the residence of
Barras at Chayot.
End of chapters 3 and 4.
Chapters 5 through 7
of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire
by Walter Gere.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
5.
1796
The Citizeness Bonaparte
In October 1795, there was a revolt of the sections of Paris against the new Constitution,
and above all, against the new law of two-thirds,
by which the members of the Convention had sought to secure the election of two-thirds of their number to the new call legislative.
Barras was placed in command of the troops of the Convention,
and he appointed as his aide-de-cahn or chief of staff,
a young artillery officer named Napoleon Bonaparte,
who had distinguished himself at the siege of Toulon.
Bonaparte easily put down the uprising,
and the convention showed its gratitude.
He was named General Ensecon of the Army of the Interior,
8th of October,
promoted general of division, 16th of October,
and succeeded Barras as General-in-Chief of the Army of the Interior
on the 26th of October.
The day of the insurrection,
the 13 Vandemiere, 5th of October, and the following day, Josephine was at Fontainebleau,
where she had gone to select some furniture to be sent to her new house in Paris.
A week after her return, she was notified of the order of the Committee of Public Safety
that all citizens of Paris must surrender the arms in their possession.
This seems to have been a matter of indifference to her,
but Eugen, who was at home, protested warmly against giving up his father's sword.
The commissioner consented to let him keep it,
if he secured the authorization of the general-in-chief.
Eugène immediately went to the headquarters of General Bonaparte
in the Rue des Capucine to make his request.
The profound emotion which he displayed,
his name, his pleasant face and manners,
the warmth with which he made his plea,
all touched the general who gave him permission to keep the saber.
Naturally, the mother of Eugène came to express her thanks
as was only polite.
Thus chance brought together General Bonaparte
and the former Vicomé,
with Napoleon it was a case of love at first sight his heart his mind his imagination all were taken by storm
she was a lady a grand dame a si-de-de-von vicomtesse the widow of a president of the constituent assembly of a general chief of the army of the rhine all this meant much to bone apart the title the social position the noble air with which she expressed her gratitude for the first time
the young Corsican found himself in the presence of a real lady of high society.
He was invited to call on her some evening when he was free,
and the next night he rung at the Port Gorscher of the little hotel in the Rue Chantrainne.
When Josephine met Napoleon about the middle of October 1795,
she was already more than 32 years old,
a mature age for a Creole.
Her hair which was not thick, but fine in quality,
was of a dark chestnut color.
Her complexion was brunette.
Her skin was already wrinkled, but so covered with powder and rouge, that the fact was not apparent under a subdued light.
Her teeth were bad, but no one ever saw them.
Her very small mouth was never more than slightly opened, in a sweet smile which accorded perfectly with the infinite softness of her eyes with their long eyelashes,
with the tender expression of her features, with the touching quality of her voice.
And with that, a petit ne frigant, legée, mobile, or narine perpetually.
batante, a knee unper-leave-dubu,
engagant and fripon,
which provoked the desire.
Her head, however,
could not be mentioned in comparison with her form,
so free and so spelt,
without a sign of en bonpoint.
She wore no corset,
not even a brassiere,
to sustain her breast,
which was low and flat.
Lucien writes in his memoir,
that she had very little wit,
and no trace of what could be called beauty,
but there were certain creole characteristics
in the pliant undulations of
her figure, which was rather below the average height.
Arnault and his souvenir says that she had a charm which transcended the dazzling beauty of her
two rivals, Madame Talien and Recamier.
Madame de Rémyza describes her friend in these words.
Without being precisely beautiful, her whole person was possessed of a peculiar charm.
Her figure was perfect, every outline well-rounded and graceful, every motion easy and elegant.
Her taste in dress was excellent. Her taste in dress was excellent.
Her education had been rather neglected, but she knew wherein she was wanting and never betrayed her ignorance.
Naturally tactful, she found it easy to say agreeable things.
With all these qualities, the femme attracted Napoleon at their first meeting,
while the dame impressed him by her air of dignity, as he put it.
"'Se Maintien calme and noble de l'Anseigne Societie Franze.'
The first call was quickly followed by another,
and soon Bonaparte was a daily visitor at the little hotel.
Events moved rapidly in those days,
and two weeks after the first visit,
Napoleon and Josephine were already on most intimate terms.
On the 28th of October, she writes him,
You no longer come to see a friend who loves you.
You have entirely neglected her.
You are very wrong, for she is tenderly attached to you.
Come to breakfast with me tomorrow.
I must see you and talk with you about your interests.
good night my friend i embrace you veve boarnet henceforth napoleon follows josephine everywhere he accompanies her too or meets her at the houses that she frequents he makes the acquaintance of madame talien as soon as the receptions begin at the luxembourg he joins her there
It is at this time that he writes her one of the first of his glowing love letters.
I awake full of thoughts of thee.
Thy image and the intoxicating evening of yesterday have left no repose to my senses.
Sweet and incomparable, Josephine, what strange effect do you have upon my heart?
If thou art displeased or sad or uneasy, my soul is overcome with grief, and there is no rest for thy friend.
But it is entirely different.
when yielding to the profound sentiment which masters me,
I draw from thy lips, thy heart, a scorching flame.
I shall see thee in three hours.
In the meantime, my dear love, me uldolce amor,
a million kisses, but do not give me any,
for they set my blood on fire.
On the 21st of January,
anniversary of the execution of the last king of the French,
Barras gives a large dinner.
among those present are Josephine and Theresea.
Bonaparte's conversation is very animated,
and he appears to interest the ladies greatly.
After dinner, they retire to one of the private salons,
and the general sits on a sofa between Theresea and Josephine.
The liaison seems to be generally recognized.
It is impossible to state at what date Napoleon conceived the idea of transforming
en mariage, said Bonfortune,
but it was probably when his appointment to him.
was practically decided upon, and he knew that they soon must be separated.
For her part, Josephine hesitated for some weeks.
In a letter to a friend, she admits that she does not love Napoleon,
but adds that her feeling towards him is one of indifference rather than of dislike.
She admires the general's courage, the vivacity of his mind,
which enables him to grasp the thoughts of others almost before they have been expressed,
but she is afraid of his domineering nature.
She is also frightened by the force of his passion
which he expresses with an energy which leaves no room for doubt of his sincerity.
Can she, a woman whose youth is past,
hope to hold for any length of time this violent love which resembles a fit of delirium?
Will he not later regret having failed to make a more advantageous marriage
and reproach her with what he has done for her?
Josephine consulted all of her society friends.
They told her that Bonaparte had genius and would go for her.
that it was no secret that carno intended to give him the command of the army of italy still she hesitated she was nearly thirty-three years of age almost an old woman but what else could she do she knew how uncertain was the attachment of barrace how little trust she could place in him
she was tempted to accept this chance perhaps the last she would ever have and link her fortune to that of this brilliant youth so ardent and so passionate in his vows of eternal devotion
this unexpected opportunity this union with bonaparte who was to make true for her all and more than all that she could ever have dreamed josephine was far from grasping at first
it was to be months and years before she fully realized her good fortune even after she understood what napoleon meant to her she never really appreciated the man it was beyond her intelligence she was fond of her position as the wife of the head of the state but did she ever love her love
Napoleon for himself.
On the 24th February,
Josephine finally made up her mind.
Only 11 days before,
she had done the honors
of the Little House of Barras at Chayot.
Nevertheless, she had precautions to take,
above all, to conceal her age,
for she did not wish to admit the facts
to this boy of 26.
She placed the matter in the hands
of her man of confidence, Calmelae,
who appeared before a notary and certified
that he knew Marie-Joseph Taché,
widow of the citizen Boel
that she was a native of the island of Martinique in the Windward Islands, and that at this
moment it was impossible for him to procure her birth certificate on account of the actual
occupation of the island by the British. Armed with this declaration, Josephine was able to state
to the civil officer who performed the marriage that she was born on the 23rd of June 1766,
while she was really born three years before. The marriage contract was one of the most remarkable
ever drawn up in France. No details of the bride's property were given. All that she possessed was
to belong to the community which existed between her and the late Monsieur de Boerner. For his part,
Bonaparte did not hesitate to admit his lack of fortune. He stated that he had nothing except
his wardrobe and his war equipment, upon which he placed a merely nominal value. The contract was
signed the 8th of March 1796, and the marriage took place the following day before a civil officer,
graciously gave the groom twenty-eight years instead of twenty-six and the bride twenty-nine in place of thirty-two this mayor remarks a commentator had a mania for
the witnesses were lamarrois and aide de khan of the general who was a minor the inevitable calmolet talien and barrace no mention was made of the consent of the parents they had not been consulted
Two days later, Bonaparte was on his way to Italy, leaving his bride alone in the Hotel Chantrain.
Heuze, we've preed des avances on the Lune de Miel.
6. 1796
The Victory Festivals
From this time on, the life of Josephine is so closely associated with that of Napoleon,
that it is impossible to speak of her without mentioning him.
Leaving Paris on the 11th of March 1796,
48 hours after his marriage,
Bonaparte set out for Italy,
accompanied only by his aid
de Camberty, Durec, Junot,
Mermont and Murat,
and his paymaster general Chauvet,
who carried with him 48,000 francs in gold.
A small sum for the sucker of an army
which had long been destitute of everything.
On route, Napoleon stopped a night
with the father of Marmon at Chattillon-sur-Sain.
Here, he was a son.
wrote Josephine, enclosing a power of attorney, to enable her to collect some money which was due
him. On the 14th of March at six o'clock in the evening from the relay station at Chancourt,
he dispatched his first long letter. He wrote,
Every moment carries me further away from you, my dearest love, and every instant finds me
with less force to endure my separation from you. You are the constant object of my thoughts,
and my imagination is exhausted in trying to conceive what you are.
are doing. If I think that you are sad, my heart is torn and my grief intensified. If you are gay,
playful with your friends, I reproach you for having so soon forgotten the painful separation
of three days. As you see, I am not easy to satisfy. But, my dear love, it is very different if I fear
that your health is altered, or that you have reasons for grief. Then I regret the speed which
carries me away from my heart. If I am at a very different, if I am a very different. If I am a very different,
asked if I have slept well, before
replying I must have a courier
to let me know that you have had a good night.
May my good angel,
who has always protected me in the midst
of the greatest dangers, surround
and cover you, and leave me
exposed. Write me,
my dearest love, and at length,
and receive the thousand and one
kisses of the most devoted and most
faithful of lovers.
At this time,
Josephine was very far from reciprocating
the love of her husband.
adored her while she was only moderately touched by his passion. His strange, violent character
inspired her with astonishment rather than with sympathy. She was in her element in this
brilliant but bizarre society of the directory, which tried to imitate the former splendors of
Versailles. She enjoyed the opening of the few salons where her grace and amiability caused
her to be generally admired. She gave but few thoughts to this young Republican general to whom
destiny had united her, who seemed to her more of an eccentric than a genius.
Napoleon turned from his route to pass two days with his mother at Marseille and hand her a letter
from Josephine. His mother was not yet reconciled to his marriage, and it was only after a hard
struggle and a family council of war that Madame Letitia was finally persuaded to write a very
formal and stilted letter of congratulation to her new daughter-in-law. A week later, the 29th of March,
Bonaparte arrived at Nice and took command of the Army of Italy.
During the opening days of this marvelous campaign,
which was to render his name immortal,
Napoleon was not so carried away with ambition
as to be forgetful of his love.
Before the first battle, he wrote Josephine from Paul Maurice
on the 3rd of April.
I have received all your letters,
but none of them has made such an impression on me as the last.
What can be your idea, my adorable love,
to write me in such terms?
The sentiments that you express are like fire.
They consume my poor heart.
Do you not think that my position is already critical enough
without increasing my regrets and upsetting my spirit?
My only, Josephine, away from you there is no joy.
Far from you, the world is a desert where I am alone.
You have taken away from me more than my soul.
You are the one thought of my life.
If I am weary with the burden of affairs,
if I fear the outcome, if I am disgusted with men,
if I am ready to curse life, I place my hand upon my heart.
Your portrait beats there.
I regard it, and love is for me absolute happiness.
All is gay except the space that I am separated from my love.
His whole soul in a state of ecstasy over the receipt of a few tender lines
traced by the adored hand, he continues.
By what art have you been able to captivate all my faculties, to concentrate in yourself my moral existence?
To live for Josephine is the whole aim of my life.
I strive to be near you. I died to approach you.
Fool! I did not realize that I was separating myself from you.
How many lands, how many countries lie between us?
How many days before you read these lines, which are but feeble expressions,
of a troubled heart where you reign.
Unfortunately, the sunshine of love is never long without its clouds,
and Bonaparte, who was then in the seventh heaven of joy and confidence,
was soon to become suspicious and jealous.
Although he did not as yet doubt either the love or the fidelity of his wife,
at times he was overcome with melancholy.
But this feeling was not of long duration.
The lover soon was lost in the man of action.
Victory followed victory with amazing rapidity.
From the heights of Monte Zemolo, the army suddenly saw at its feet the fertile plains of Italy,
the promised land with its splendid cities, its broad rivers, its cultivated fields.
A shout of joy broke from the ranks.
The young general, pointing to the scene of his coming triumphs, cried,
Hannibal scaled the Alps, we have turned them.
After the armistice of Kerasco on the 28th of April,
Bunaparte thus summed up in a few ringing words the achievements of his own.
Army. Soldiers. In two weeks you have gained six victories, captured 21 flags,
fifty cannon, several strong places, and have conquered the richest part of Piedmont. You have made
fifteen thousand prisoners and killed her wounded ten thousand men. Destitute of all, you have supplied
everything. You have gained battles without cannon, crossed rivers without bridges,
made forced marches without shoes, often bivouacked without bread.
Only Republican phalanxes are capable of deeds so extraordinary.
Thanks to you, soldiers.
On the 24th of April, Bonaparte sent his brother Joseph and his aide-de-canon to Paris.
Joseph was the bearer of a letter to Josephine in which her husband strongly urged her to rejoin him in Italy.
Junot carried the flags captured from the enemy to be presented to the directory.
In his memoir, Joseph tells the story of their journey.
They left in the same post-chaise and reached Paris in five days after their departure from Nice.
On route, they were everywhere received with the greatest enthusiasm.
At Paris, the directors expressed their satisfaction with the army and its commander.
Murat, who had been sent directly from Carasco with the papers of the armistice,
reached Paris before Joseph and Junot.
Josephine received from the three envoys the most of the most of the army.
most circumstantial details of the success of her husband. Like Napoleon, she had passed in a few
days from obscurity to glory. For the first time, she began to realize that she had not made
a mistake in marrying the young hero of Vandemier. The Moniteur of the 10th of May 1796
contains a report of the formal presentation of the flags to the directory by Junot, the future Duke
D'Abrantès. In her interesting memoir, Madame D'Abrantès speaks of the
impression created on this occasion by Madame Bonaparte and Madame Talien who were present.
At that time, she says, Madame Bonaparte was still charming, while Madame Talien was in the
full flower of her beauty. She continues, one may well believe that Gino was not a little
proud to escort these two charming women when they left at the end of the reception.
He offered his arm to Madame Bonaparte, who as the wife of his general had the right to
the first place, especially on this occasion.
The other arm he gave to Madame Talien
and so dissented with them
the staircase of the Luxembourg.
There was an immense crowd outside the palace,
and the people pushed and crowded
to obtain a better view.
There were cheers for General Bonaparte
and for his charming wife,
who was acclaimed as
Notre Dame de Victoire.
The poet Arnaud in his
Souvenier de Xigener
recalls the profound impression
made upon him so many years before
by the loveliness of Joseph
in this occasion.
He compares her with her two competitors
for the scepter of Venus,
Madame Talleyin and Madame Ricamier.
Beside these two
rivals, he says, although she was
not so brilliant or so fresh as they,
thanks to the regularity of her features,
the elegant suplex of her figure,
the sweet expression of her countenance,
she also was beautiful.
I can still see them on this
perfect May Day, as they entered
the salon where the directors were to receive
the flags.
Each of them was attired in the toilette the best fitted to show off her particular advantages.
Their heads were crowned with the most beautiful flowers.
One would have said that the three months of springtime had been reunited to fate the victory.
The same day that the flags were presented, the 10th of May, Bonaparte gained the spectacular victory of Lodi,
which made so vivid an impression on the popular imagination.
carrying a banner in his hand at the head of his grenadiers,
the young general led the charge across the long and narrow bridge upon which the fire of the
enemy was concentrated. From that time forth, his soldiers believed him infallible and irresistible.
Five days later, he made his triumphal entry into Milan.
The day after the Battle of Lodi, Salichetti, the commissioner with the army, wrote the
directory. Citizen directors, immortal glory to the army of Italy.
Gratitude to the wisely audacious chief who directs it.
The date of yesterday will be celebrated in the annals of history and of war.
When the Republican column was formed, General Bonaparte rushed along the ranks.
His presence filled the soldiers with enthusiasm.
He was received with cries a thousand times repeated of,
Vive la Republic.
He ordered the drums to beat the charge, and the troops.
with the rapidity of lightning rushed upon the bridge.
To celebrate the new triumphs, the directory organized a fate,
half patriotic, half mythological, which was celebrated on the Chandemouse
the 29th of May.
At ten o'clock in the morning, a salvo of artillery announced the beginning of the ceremonies.
The National Guard of Paris was present under arms.
Carnot, the president of the directory, delivered the oration,
which was in the nature of a martial rhapsody.
He ended his discourse with a glowing tribute to the armies of the Republic and their valiant chiefs.
After the fate, the people danced on the Chaudmouse until nightfall, and a grand dinner was given in the evening.
7. 1796 to 1797
Josephine in Italy
On Sunday the 15th of May, 1796, Bonaparte made his entry into Milan through streets lined by the National Guard commanded by
the Duke de Ser Baloney. When the general arrived at the Porta Romana, the soldiers presented arms.
Preceded by a large detachment of infantry, and surrounded by his guard of cavalry,
he proceeded to the Archducaule Palace where he took up his residence. In the evening there was
a large dinner given in his honor, followed by a brilliant ball. But in the midst of his
triumphs, Bonaparte was far from happy. His adored wife failed to respond to his letters,
praying her to join him in Italy, and he had just received news of the proposal of the directory
to divide his forces, giving the Northern Army to Kellerman, while he was to be sent with the balance
of the troops to conquer the southern part of the peninsula. He immediately wrote to the
directory that he considered it most unwise to divide the Army of Italy into two parts, and against
the best interests of the Republic to have two different generals. The majority of the directory
accepted his view of the situation, and the order was at once cancelled.
One apart found it more difficult, however, to overcome the resistance of his wife.
Josephine was more interested in enjoying at Paris the triumphs of her husband than in going to join him at Milan.
She was perfectly happy in her life at home, and had no desire to leave her children and her friends.
She loved the theatres, the manners of the Ancien regime, which were beginning to reappear,
and at the receptions at the Luxembourg where she was treated like a queen.
It certainly was not customary, since the beginning of the world.
of the Republic to see the wives of the generals accompany the armies, and it was too much to
demand of the Creole nature of Josephine that she should rush to Italy at the first call of her
husband and expose herself to the fatigues and dangers of a great war. But Napoleon could not
understand her hesitation. He wrote her letter after letter, each one more burning and more
pressing than the one before. Murat, who carried to Paris the papers of the armistice,
was also the bearer of a letter to Josephine urging her to reach her to reach her.
join him. This letter, which she did not hesitate to show to her friends, was characterized by the
most violent passion not entirely free from jealousy. Arnaud writes, I can still hear her reading a
passage in which her husband cries, what are you doing? Why do you not come to me? If it is a lover who
detains you, beware of the poignard of Othello. And Josephine, smiling with amusement at his exalted
sentiments, says with her funny Creole accent, he is droll bonaparte.
In his Life of Napoleon, Sir Walter Scott writes that the correspondence of Bonaparte with Josephine
reveals the curious character of a man as ardent in love as in war. The language of the conqueror
who disposed of states according to his good pleasure, and beat the most celebrated generals of
his time, is as enthusiastic as that of an Arcadian Shepherd. The statements of the great English
writer are certainly borne out by the tone of the long, passionate, and eloquent letter which
Napoleon wrote Josephine on the 15th of June 1796 from Tartona. It was dispatched by a special
courier who had orders to remain only four hours in Paris and to bring back her answer.
Josephine could not resist this final touching appeal, and she decided, although with great regret,
to leave for Italy. Her friend Arnaud in his interesting memoirs gives us a curious insight
of the feelings of Josephine at this time. He says that the love which she inspired in a
man so extraordinary as Bonaparte evidently flattered her, although she took the matter much less
seriously than he. She was proud to see that he loved her almost as much as his glory. She enjoyed
this fame which increased from day to day, but she wished to enjoy it at Paris in the midst
of the acclamations which hailed her appearance on the receipt of each new bulletin from the army
of Italy. Her chagrin was great when she saw that there was no chance for further hesitation.
She would not have exchanged her little hotel in the Rue Chantrain for the palace prepared for her reception at Milan.
In fact, for all the palaces in the world.
It was from the Luxembourg that she finally set out for Italy, after having supped there with a few friends.
Poor woman, says Arnaud.
She broke out in tears and sobbed as if she were going to the scaffold.
She was going to rain.
Josephine arrived at Milan the 9th of July 1796, escorted to her.
by her brother-in-law Joseph, by Napoleon's aide-de-con, Junot, and by a young officer on the
staff of General Leclair named Ippolyte Chal, whom we shall encounter later on in close connection
with Josephine. Bonaparte, who had not expected so prompt a response to his last appeal,
was absent on a tour of the principal cities of northern Italy. The first day of July, he paid
a visit to the Grand Duke Ferdinand at Florence. From there he went to Bologna and Verona,
and did not reach Milan until the middle of the month.
What a change in the situation of Bonaparte
in the four short months since he parted from Josephine at Paris.
In order not to excite the jealousy of the directory,
he had abandoned the archducal palace,
but was lodged in almost Rigo state
in the Cer Baloney Palace on the Corso-Vanetia,
a few squares behind the cathedral.
The Ser Baloney is far handsomer than the royal palace,
and perhaps the most beautiful of all the palaces of Milan.
Since the opening of the campaign in April, his troops had overrun nearly all of northern Italy.
Piedmont, delivered from the yoke of Austria, had made peace with France, and the remainder of the
imperial army was blockaded at Mantua. He had treated as an equal with the King of Sardinia,
the Pope, the Duke of Modena, and the Grand Duke of Tuscany, all of whom owed to his generosity
their political existence. Genoa and Venice, Rome and Naples, had all withdrawn from the
coalition. The great cities of northern Italy had surrendered their most celebrated works of art
to enrich the collections of the Louvre. Millions of francs had been levied on the different states,
part of which had supplied his army, while the balance had been transmitted to Paris to fill the empty
coffers of the directory. What wonder that the name of Bonaparte was everywhere acclaimed?
Josephine passed the summer at Milan, except for a short visit to headquarters before the Battle of Castellione.
Having resumed the siege of Mantua after his victory, Napoleon went to Milan where he spent only 24 hours with his wife before rejoining his troops.
While Bonaparte was gaining his victories, Josephine was bored to death in Italy.
The feeling of sadness which oppressed her is shown in a letter which she wrote at this time to her aunt Madame Renaudin,
who had finally married her old lover, the Marquis de Boernet.
The Duke de Ser Baloney, who was going to Paris, was charged with the delivery of this epistle.
which ran as follows.
Monsieur Serbaloni will tell you, my dear aunt,
of the manner in which I have been received in Italy.
All the princes have given me fed,
even the Grand Duke of Tuscany,
the brother of the emperor.
Well, I prefer to be a simple private individual in France.
I do not care for the honors of this country.
I am much bored.
It is true that my health contributes much to make me sad,
I am often indisposed.
If good fortune,
could assure good health, I ought to be well. I have the most amiable husband that a woman could
hope for. I have no chance to desire anything. My wishes are his. All day long he is in a position
of adoration before me, as if I were a divinity. I could not have a better husband. He often
writes my children of whom he is very fond. He is sending Orteans by Monsieur Cerbaloni a beautiful
enamelled repeating watch. To a Jean, a handsome gold watch. He is sending Orteans, a handsome gold watch.
Comparatively, few of the letters of Josephine have been preserved for us, and this one is
particularly interesting because it displays more appreciation of her husband's devotion than we
should expect to find.
Ten days after the Battle of Arcoli on the 27th of November, Napoleon returned to Milan
where he expected to find Josephine.
Great was his surprise and disappointment to learn that she had accepted an invitation from
Genoa to pay a visit to the city.
There she was given a magnificent reception
by the citizens who were favorable to the French.
On learning of Napoleon's arrival,
Josephine returned at once to Milan
where they spent the month of December together
at the Cer Baloney Palace.
It was really their Lune de Miel,
the first time that they had been united
for more than a few hours
since their marriage nine months before.
La Vallette,
who had then just been appointed
one of Bonaparte's aide-de-can,
gives us in his memoir
an interesting picture of this
kind of military court. He says,
The General-in-Chief was then in all the intoxication of his marriage.
Madame Bonaparte was charming, and all the cares of his command, all the tasks of the
government of Italy did not prevent her husband from fully enjoying his domestic happiness.
It was during this short sojourn at Milan that the young painter-Gro made the first portrait
that we have of the General. He represents him upon the bridge of Lodi at the moment that he
seized the flag and called upon the troops to follow him.
The artist could not obtain time for a sitting, so Madame Bonaparte took her husband
upon her knees, after Dijan, and kept him there for several minutes.
I was present at three of these sittings.
The age of the young couple, the modesty of the painter, and his enthusiasm for the
hero excuse this familiarity.
With the beginning of the new year, Austria resumed hostilities, and Bonaparte left
Milan to take command of his army. On the 14th of January, he won the brilliant victory of Rivoli,
and two days later, that of La Favorita, which settled the fate of Mantua. Without waiting
to receive the surrender of the fortress, he proceeded to Tolentino, where on the 19th of February
he concluded a treaty with the Pope. Two months later at Leobin he signed the preliminary
Articles of Peace with Austria, which marked the end of the Great Campaign of Italy. During his
absence from Josephine, Napoleon, as usual, wrote her nearly every day.
Madame Derimusse, who is always reluctant to admit that Napoleon was ever more controlled
by his heart than by his head, is nevertheless struck by the passion revealed in every line
of this correspondence.
In her memoir, she says, I have seen the letters of Napoleon to Madame Bonaparte at the time
of the first campaign of Italy.
These letters are very singular, a writing almost illegible, a faulty spelling, a faulty spelling,
a style bizarre and confused, but with all a tone so passionate, sentiment so strong, expressions so animated
and at the same time so poetic, a love so apart from all other loves, that there is no woman
who would not prize having received such letters.
As Milan is one of the hottest places in Italy, during his second summer, Napoleon
resided at the magnificent chateau of Montebello, or Mombello, which is situated on the old
Como Road a few miles from the city.
It was then a great country villa sitting far back from the high road in a large park with
cool, shady avenues, pretty fountains, and all the exquisite loveliness of an Italian retreat.
From the Broad High Terrace that ran around at the front and the sides of the chateau,
the Alps could be seen on one side, and the beautiful spires of the Milan Cathedral on the other.
Here, most of the Bonaparte family were reunited for the first time since they left Corsican.
four years before.
Madame Bonaparte came to secure Napoleon's approval of the marriage of his eldest sister,
Elisa, to Felix Bakiote, which had been celebrated at Marseille the 1st of May,
and to persuade him to furnish a dot.
Napoleon finally yielded to his mother's wishes, and at the same time informed her of a marriage
which he had arranged between General Leclair and his sister Pauline.
The marriage was celebrated on the 14th of June, with both civil and religious forms,
by the express orders of Napoleon,
and the civil union of Bacciochi and Eliza
was blessed by the church at the same time.
This family meeting was not prolonged.
After a visit of two weeks,
Madame Letitia left for Corsica,
accompanied by Elisa and her husband.
At the same time, Joseph set out for Rome,
where he had just made minister,
taking with him his wife and his youngest sister, Caroline.
Jerome was sent back to college at Paris,
and Pauline remained in Italy with Leclair,
who had been named chief of staff in the army.
The three months which Napoleon and Josephine passed at Montebello
were perhaps the happiest of their lives.
The conqueror of Italy lived in regal style,
surrounded by his military court.
The attention of Europe was more drawn to this chateau
than to all the palaces of the emperors and kings.
At Milan, as later at Paris,
Josephine admirably served the interests of her husband.
By her antecedents, her relations,
her character, she formed a connecting link between him and the old aristocracy. Without her,
by his own admission made later on, he never could have had any natural rapport with the old
regime. The salon of the former Bicontes de Boernet recalled the traditions of the most brilliant
circles of the Fobour Saint-Germain. Josephine received the noble families of Milan with an exquisite
grace, and their reigned a kind of etiquette which contrasted in a singular manner with the democratic
care affected by the general. On the 18th of August, Napoleon and Josephine made a short excursion
to Lake Maggiore, accompanied by Bertie and Mio. Immediately upon their return, they set out for
Udine, where Napoleon was to meet the Austrian plenipotentiaries. On the 27th of August, they
arrived at Passeriano, where they took up their residence in a chateau, still in existence,
which had formerly belonged to a doge of Venice. It was a fine country residence, situational,
on the left bank of the Talia Mento about ten miles from Udine.
The peace negotiations had dragged along through the summer and far into the autumn of 1797,
mainly owing to the hope of the Emperor that events in France might turn to his advantage.
The coup d'etat of the 18 Fructidor, 4th of September,
had destroyed the last hope of the royalists,
and Bonaparte's victorious army was still in Venetia, ready to march on Vienna,
so nothing remained except to conclude peace.
the final treaty was signed on the seventeenth of october it bore the name of the piece of campo formio from a village situated half-way between paseriano and udena
on the second day of november napoleon and josephine were again back at milan leaving his wife there bonaparte started two weeks later ferastat traveling by way of geneva where he stopped for a day he was accompanied by his aide-de-canc duroc levallette and marmon his second
Secretary Boorien and his physician, Ivan.
On the 25th of November, Bonaparte reached Rastat,
where he remained only long enough to exchange with the Austrian plenipotentiaries
the ratification of the Treaty of Campo Formio and then left for Paris.
He arrived home on the 5th of December and took up his residence in the little hotel in the
Rue Chantrain, from which he had set out 21 months before an obscure man,
to which he returned as a celebrity.
On the 29th of December, by decree of the Department of the Sen, the Rue Chantrainne was changed in his honor to Rue de la Victoire.
End of Chapters 5 through 7.
Chapter 8, 9 and 10 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
8. 1798 to 1799.
The Purchase of Malmeson
Josephine finally reached Paris
upon the second day of January.
She took nearly six weeks for the journey
and did not seem to be in as great haste
as she claimed in her letters to leave that tiresome Italy
and see her beloved daughter again.
After a visit to Turin, she crossed Montsenie
in terrible weather and stopped several days at Lyon.
The fate to Bonaparte planned by Talleyrand
had to be put off from day to day as the general
wished his wife to be present.
aside from the necessary calls on the directors and ministers
during the month after his return Napoleon made only a few appearances in public
on the 10 December he attended the fact given in his honor by the directors of the
Luxembourg another evening he was present during one act of a play at the Francais
the rest of the time he deliberately stayed at home and refused to receive the applause of
the people which greeted him on every appearance
the day after the arrival of Josephine it was necessary
for him to issue from his retirement to attend the fight arranged by Talleyrand.
The Minister of Foreign Affairs then occupied the luxurious Hotel Galifé in the Rue du Bac,
which had been splendidly decorated for the occasion.
At half-past ten, Bonaparte appeared in civilian costume, accompanied by his wife who wore
a Greek tunic with cameos in her hair.
Somewhat embarrassed by the ovation he received, Napoleon took the arm of Arnaud and made the
tour of the salons.
It was during this promenade that Madame de Stahl forced herself upon his attention and received an answer to her impertinent questions the celebrated reply which was to make of her his lifelong enemy.
General, she said as soon as she had met him.
What woman do you love best?
My wife?
Naturally.
But whom do you esteem most?
That one who is the best housekeeper?
Very true.
But who do you think is the first among women?
Women. Madam, the one who bears the most children.
There is little wonder that the conceited Madame de Stahl did not love Napoleon after this brief
passage at arms. During the supper, Bonaparte was seated beside his wife to whom he was most
attentive. At one o'clock, they left the ball. On her return from Italy, Josephine had settled again
in her little hotel of the Rue de la Victoire, upon which she had ordered extensive alterations
made at a cost of over 100,000 francs, although at the time she still had only a lease.
However, on the last day of March, Bonaparte purchased the property for the sum of 52,000 francs.
The house was soon full to overflowing with the many rare paintings and object d'Arre which
Josephine had shipped from Italy. This was the beginning of the immense collection which later
entirely filled her chateau of Malmeson. In October, before his return from Italy, Bonaparte had
been appointed General-in-Chief of the Army of England. On February 4th, he left Paris for a
12-day's tour of inspection of the Channel ports from Calais to Astande. On his return, he reported
to the Directory that the proposed invasion of England was a most dangerous and difficult undertaking,
and as an alternative plan suggested an eastern expedition which would menace the British trade
with the Indies. He had little difficulty in obtaining the consent of the directory to the new
plan, and on the 4th of March the government formally approved of the expedition to Egypt.
All the familiars of Josephine stood in the greatest awe of Napoleon, but the moment he was absent,
the house was filled with the friends of the mistress of the mansion. As soon as Bonaparte leapt for
his tour of the Channel ports, Josephine seems to have renewed her intimacy with Paris. There is
certainly ground for suspicion in the note that she hastily scribbled to the secretary of the
director on the unexpected return of her husband.
Bonaparte arrived tonight.
I beg you, my dear Botto, to assure Barras of my regret that I cannot go to dinner with
him.
Tell him not to forget me.
You know better than anyone my position.
It was a notorious fact that most of the generals of the Republic had not returned to Paris
with empty hands, but Bonaparte pretended that he was different from the others.
Later at St. Helena, he claimed that on his return from Italy his fourths
Fortune did not exceed 300,000 francs, but it seems probable that he had nearer three millions.
In addition, he had his salary of 40,000 francs as General-in-Chief, and 7,000 francs a month
while head of the French legation at Rostadt. During his absence in the East, he left his funds
in the hands of Joseph as a common purse for the family, and it is well known that the Bonaparte's
did not suffer for lack of money while he was away. It is very possible that in his recollections
Napoleon omitted a zero from his calculations.
On the 3 May 1798,
Napoleon and Josephine,
after dining informally with Paris at the Luxembourg,
went to the Teatro Francet to Citalma in Macbeth.
That evening the Conqueror of Italy
was greeted with the same enthusiasm
as during the first days of his return.
After the play, they went home
and at midnight set out for Toulon.
Besides Josephine,
Napoleon had in the carriage with him,
his secretary Boreen and his aide-de-camp eugen, duroc, and La Ballette.
To escape the vigilance of the English spies, Napoleon had kept his plans entirely secret,
and even forbade Josephine to go to Saint-Germain to say adieu to Orteuette.
Upon their arrival at Toulon, Bonaparte informed Josephine for the first time
that he did not intend to take her with him, as he did not wish to expose her to the dangers
and fatigues of the voyage and the severity of the climate.
In vain she pleaded that the voice.
had no terrors for her after three trips across the Atlantic, and that the heat of Egypt could
not affect a Creole. To console her, Bonaparte finally promised that as soon as he was well
established in Egypt at the end of two months, he would send for her the frigate, Pommon,
under the convoy of which she had made her first voyage from Martinique to France.
Bonaparte knew that there was no time to be lost in setting sail, but the expedition
was detained ten days by contrary winds. Although he was not then away,
of the fact. On the second day of May, Nelson had been detached from the fleet that was
blockading cadiz to go in search of information regarding the preparations at Toulon.
He arrived off that port on the 17th May but was driven back by an adverse wind
and was not able to return until ten days after the departure of the French expedition.
Never was fortune more favorable to Napoleon. If the French fleet had encountered Nelson
at any time during the long voyage of six weeks, it had not more than.
more than one chance in a hundred of escaping absolute destruction.
The adieu of Bonaparte and Josephine were very tender.
The signal for departure was given,
and before a strong northwest wind, the fleet moved out of the port.
Bonaparte was on the Orient,
a vessel of 120 guns,
and, from a balcony, Josephine with a glass,
followed her husband as long as the ship was in sight.
After the departure of the expedition,
Josephine did not return directly to Paris.
but went to Plombier in the Vosge to take the waters.
While there, she met with a serious accident.
A wooden balcony upon which she was standing with several friends
gave way under them, and she fell fourteen feet to the pavement below.
Fortunately, no bones were broken, but she was painfully bruised.
Ortense was sent for at the school of Madame Campan,
and nursed her mother during the convalescence.
No sovereign was ever better cared for.
Barras received the bulletins of her health,
drawn up by the resident physicians.
All the authorities of the department called,
musicians brought from Epinale gave her serenades.
Her rooms were filled with rare flowers.
At Plombier, she received the first news of the expedition
from the capture of Malta to the occupation of Cairo.
She also learned from Bonaparte's letters
that she must give up the idea of sailing to rejoin him.
The fleet of Nelson was in full command of the Mediterranean,
and all the French ports were closed.
The frigate upon which she was to have sailed had been captured by an English cruiser in leaving Toulon.
The last of August, Josephine was back in Paris.
At this time, she arranged to purchase the estate of Malmaison.
The prices generally stated to have been 160,000 francs, paid in part with her dot, and in part with the resources of her husband.
As a matter of fact, the deed which was passed before a notary of Paris the 21st of April 1799,
shows that the price agreed upon was 225,000 francs,
with 37,500 francs additional for the furniture,
and over 9,000 francs for the recording fee.
Josephine only paid down in cash the amount of the furniture,
37,500 francs, with the avails of diamonds and jewelry belonging to her.
The balance was left unsettled.
From the funds deposited by Napoleon with Joseph
was drawn the money to pay for the princely estates bought about the same time,
by other members of the family.
In Italy, Lucien purchased
of a Roman princess
an estate bringing in a revenue
of 4,000 francs a year,
at Paris, a hotel corner
of the Rue du Montblanc and de la Victoire,
near Villare Coutre,
a fine chateau,
which with the farm of Soussi
brought in over 17,000 francs a year.
Joseph also acquired at Paris
a new hotel which cost him
at the outset over 100,000 francs.
And near Saint-Lis,
the magnificent estate of Montefontaine, with a vast park and one of the finest English gardens
in Europe, for which he paid 258,000 francs. As the place had been much neglected during the
revolution, he was obliged to spend in its restoration another quarter of a million the first year.
Truly, the modest 300,000 francs brought back from Italy by Napoleon, went a long way.
At the same time, Josephine had much difficulty in obtaining from Joseph the payment of the small allowance of
40,000 francs fixed by Napoleon, and was very indignant over the way in which he dispersed her
husband's money. With her magnificent jewels, her priceless paintings and object d'ar, she was
actually short of money to meet her current bills. In acting as he did, Joseph may have gone
beyond his brother's orders. But the conduct of Josephine since her return from Plombier had been
anything but exemplary. She was again on very intimate terms with Paris, and her liaison with
the Politchal, which had begun at Milan, was a matter of public notoriety.
At Melmaison, this young officer ruled almost as lord and master.
Did Josephine think, like many others, that Bonaparte would never return from the Orient,
or did she imagine that Egypt was so far away that he would never hear of her conduct?
If so, she was mistaken in both suppositions.
He was to return to give her a very mauve carter, and the reports were to reach him in Egypt
through an indiscretion on the part of Junot.
Both Borien and Madame Juno have given us a vivid picture of Napoleon's rage and despair on this occasion.
He cried,
I would give all the world to know that Juno's tale is false,
so much do I love Josephine.
But if she is really guilty, a divorce must separate us forever.
I will not submit to be the laughingstock of all the imbeciles of Paris.
I will write Joseph to have the divorce declared.
It is absurd to claim, as many historians have done,
that Napoleon at the time of his marriage was ignorant of Josephine's past life.
He certainly must have known of her relations with Paris, at least.
But the past did not concern him.
All that he asked was for fidelity in the future.
The nobleness of his character and his understanding of the situation
are clearly shown in the letter he wrote her from Milan 11th of June 1796.
Everything pleased me, even the remembrance of your errors and of the afflicting scene which took place two weeks before our marriage.
His rights over her heart and mind only date from the hour that she accepted his love and freely gave him her hand.
The past no longer counts.
But from that moment she belongs to him, and if she deceives him, all is over.
If Josephine had been true to him, without doubt Napoleon would have remained faithful in Egypt as he had been
in Italy. At Cairo, the favorite rendezvous of the officers was a garden modeled upon the
Tivoli at Paris, which was kept by an old school friend of Bonaparte at Brienne. Here, Napoleon met a
very pretty young woman with blonde hair, a dazzling complexion and beautiful teeth. Her name was
Marguerite Pauline Bellille, and she was an apprentice to a modest at Carcassonne when she
married a young lieutenant in the Chasseur-a-cheval named Fourez. In the midst of their honeymoon came
the command to embark for Egypt, with stringent orders that no wives were to accompany the expedition.
Like several other devoted wives, the young woman donned one of her husband's uniforms and
sailed on the same ship with him. Either from virtue or calculation, Madame Fores did not yield
to the first attack. It required declarations, letters, handsome presents. Finally, all was arranged.
In the middle of December, Fores received orders to leave for
France, this time, alone as bearer of letters to the directory.
A mansion was hastily furnished near the General's palace and the young lady installed there.
Unfortunately for the peace of the new Menage, the vessel upon which Forrest took passage was
captured by the English, who were well informed regarding events at Cairo, and were
malicious enough to send him back to Egypt.
He rushed to Cairo and made a scene with his wife who promptly secured a divorce.
Napoleon seems to have become very much in love with the little Belisle, or Belilotte as she became known,
and went so far as to offer to marry her after divorcing Josephine, provided she gave him a child.
"'But what? Le Petit Zotte no se pas-a-voir,' he said with humor.
When he returned to France he arranged to have her follow him, but she in turn was captured by the English.
When she finally reached Paris, it was too late. Napoleon was reconciled with Josephine,
and the coup d'et of the 18 Brumere had made him master of France.
The consul refused to see her, but made her a handsome allowance.
She was afterwards married again, separated from her husband,
and lived the good old age of 92 years, dying in March, 1869, during the last year of the Second Empire.
9. 1799
The Return of Bonaparte
At midnight on Thursday the 22nd August 1799,
Bonaparte embarked at Alexandria on the frigate Muron, which, with three other smaller ships
set sail at five o'clock in the morning. He was accompanied by Murat and Alanne, both recently
wounded as well as by Bertie, Bessierre, D'Uroque, Lavalette, and Marmon. He also took with
him Eugene de Boerne and his secretary, Porian. He had the same good fortune as on his
outward voyage. The English fleet had gone to Cyprus for repairs and he slipped out unmolested.
Contrary winds forced the little fleet to hug the African coast, and they only made 300 miles in 20 days.
The English ships cruising between Sicily and Cap Bonn were eluded.
Then the wind changed and better progress was made.
After a voyage of 40 days, Bonaparte entered the port of Ayaccio on the 1st of October.
Here he was detained for a week by adverse winds.
Finally, on the 7th October, he sailed for France.
It was his last visit to his native island.
At noon on the 9th of October, Napoleon landed at Frigius, and at 6 o'clock started for Paris.
His journey was one long ovation. At every city through which he passed, he was received with
transports of enthusiasm. After a stop of half a day at Lyon where he attended the theater,
at midnight he again set out, traveling in a post chaise at great speed, not stopping by night or day.
he reached paris at six o'clock in the morning of the sixteenth of october and went directly to his hotel in the rue de la victoire where as upon his return from italy he found no one to receive him
josephine was dining at the luxembourg with goye the president of the directory when the news was received of the unexpected landing of bonaparte at frijus she had almost forgotten that he existed and seemed to think that he would never return but there was no time now for hesitation
she immediately set out to meet her husband and tell her story before he had a chance to see his brothers she naturally took the usual route by dijon and macon but napoleon was traveling by way of the bourbonnet and she did not meet him on her return to paris a few days later bonaparte locked his door and refused to see her
his brothers had taken advantage of her absence to tell napoleon the story of her conduct and he was fully resolved upon a divorce for a whole
day she knocked in vain and cried and sobbed before the closed door.
Finally, at the suggestion of her maid, she sent for Eugène and Othens, who joined
their supplications to those of their mother.
The door at last was unlocked, and Bonaparte appeared with open arms, his eyes wet with tears,
his face convulsed with the long and terrible struggle which he had had with his heart.
When his brothers appeared the next morning they found that all had been forgiven and forgotten.
Notwithstanding all of Josephine's indiscretions, Napoleon was wise to abandon the idea of a divorce
which would have interfered seriously with his plans.
He did well to disregard the advice of his family, who had always disapproved of his marriage
and done their best to bring about a rupture.
During his absence, in spite of his orders to Josephine not to mingle in public affairs,
she had maneuvered like a skilled diplomatist and had well prepared the way for his return.
Although her relations with Barras had now ceased,
she was on very cordial terms with her former admirer,
as well as with Goyie, the new president of the directory.
Her salon was also frequented by Talleyrand, Foucher,
and many others whose support was essential to the success of his plans.
It is possible that without the assistance of Josephine,
Napoleon might never have become emperor.
When Napoleon pardoned Josephine,
it was in no half-hearted way.
It was a pardon generous and complete, an entire wiping out of all her errors.
He had the remarkable faculty when his confidence was renewed of no longer remembering,
of suppressing in his marvelous memory all recollections of faults which he did not wish to punish.
Not only did he forgive his wife, but a virtue even rarer, he disdained to punish her guilty accomplices,
and never stood in the way of their advancement in life.
He was equally generous in the payment of the enormous death.
contracted by Josephine during his absence. He gave her the money to complete the purchase of
Malmaison, and settled with the decorators their account of over a million francs, which, after
careful scrutiny of the bills, he reduced by one-half for overcharges and articles not actually
furnished. On the 12th November, he also paid over a million francs for the national property
in the Department of the Dial, which she had contracted to purchase. Five years later, this estate
was to furnish the dot for Adele, the natural daughter of Alexandre de Beau Arnais when
Josephine arranged her marriage with a captain Lecomte.
A husband willing to pardon his wife's infidelity, and at the same time pay over two millions
of her debts, is one not often found, and if Josephine was incapable of fully appreciating
such generosity, she, at any rate, up to the time of her divorce, gave no further grounds
for public scandal.
In her own words, she was too much afraid of losing.
her position. During the weeks of preparation for the coup d'etat of the 18 Brumere, 9th November,
Josephine played an important role. In spite of all the precautions that were taken, it was impossible
to prevent rumors from reaching the ears of the three directors who were not in the plot. Baras received
warnings, also Goyie and Moulin, but they all ignored the reports. In order to keep Goyer out of the
way on the critical day, Bonaparte took advantage.
of his admiration for Josephine
to have his wife invite the director to
de jone.
At midnight on the 17 Brumere,
she wrote a short note,
and sent it by Eugen to the Luxembourg.
Will not you and your wife,
my dear Goyer, come to breakfast
with me tomorrow morning at eight o'clock?
Do not fail, for there are some very
interesting matters which I would like to talk
over with you.
Adieu, my dear Goyer. Believe me always,
your sincere friend.
La Pajuri, Bonaparte.
but goyey was alarmed over an invitation for so early an hour in the morning and remained home sending his wife in his place while the stirring events of the morning were taking place josephine used all of her charm to keep madame goye at her house
the wife of the director finally succeeded in making her escape and with some difficulty reached the luxembourg through the streets thronged with spectators and encumbered by the movements of the troops as a profound secret josephine had informed
her visitor of the intention of Telleran to see Barras and demand his resignation.
This information led Goyey to think that only Barras was to be eliminated, and from that
moment he made no further efforts to oppose the plans of the conspirators. So this little
plot did not entirely fail. Late in the evening Bonaparte returned from the Tuileries to the
Rue de la Victoire and gave Josephine a full account of the events of the day. The night passed
quietly. Lann guarded the Tuileries and Moro of Luxembourg. The troops occupied all the strategic
points of the capital. The theaters were crowded as usual. Without, the rain fell in torrents and
the streets were practically deserted. On Sunday morning, the 19 brumere, the air was clear and cool
after the storm of the night before. At dawn, the troops began their march from Paris to Saint-Clu
where the councils were to meet at midday.
The army of generals gathered at Bonaparte's house to receive his final orders.
He soon appeared upon the steps of the hotel in his uniform of general, wearing the little
hat which was already legendary.
Entering his carriage with his aide-de-con, he set out for Saint-Clue, escorted by a small
detachment of cavalry.
The day was long and tiresome, and for many hours the result was in doubt.
It finally ended in the dissolution of the directory and the jury and the day.
the appointment of three temporary consuls, Bonaparte, Seyes, and Ducoe. It was after midnight
before all the legislative work was finished, and the new consuls took their oath of office.
At three in the morning, writes Bourienne, I accompanied Bonaparte in his carriage to Paris.
Extremely fatigued after so many trials and absorbed in his reflections, he did not utter a single
word during the journey. Back in the little house in the Rue de la Victoire, he kissed Josephine,
was in bed and told her all the incidents of the day.
Then he rested for a few hours and woke up in the morning, the master of Paris and of France.
The day following the 19 Brumere, the 11th November by our calendar, was a Decadie,
or Republican Day of Rest. At ten o'clock in the morning, Bonaparte, dressed in civilian
costume, left his house, and in a carriage escorted only by six dragoons, proceeded to
the Luxembourg to join his two colleagues and set the new government in operation.
During the course of the day, Josephine also left the little hotel in the Rue de la
Victoire and moved across the seine. In all but name, the little Creole was now sovereign of France.
Ten
1800
The Consular Court
At the Petit Luxembourg, Napoleon occupied the former apartment of Moulin on the ground floor,
on the right as you enter from the rue Vaux-Girard.
His cabinet was near a private staircase which led to the first floor,
where Josephine was installed in the old quarters of Goyer.
The dinner was served at five o'clock,
and the table was always set for twenty persons.
Josephine did the honors with her usual grace.
If Bonaparte was tired or absorbed and refused to talk,
no one felt neglected.
Since the rude shock which she had received on the return of Bonaparte,
Josephine had conducted herself with so much tact
that she had entirely regained her former place in his esteem.
She was no longer loved with the same blind devotion,
but she had become a very important element in the new consular court.
By nature and by experience,
she was admirably adapted to serve her husband's interests
in rallying all parties and all factions
to the support of the new government.
The nobles of the old regime
who had frequented the Hotel in the Rue Chantrain,
such as Colin Cour,
Just de Noai and Seguer, began to encounter in her salon at the Luxembourg
men of the revolution like Mange, Real and Cambaceres.
No one was received except upon a written invitation,
and formal notice was served by Bonaparte that the dress or rather undress
of the ladies who frequented the court of the directory would no longer be tolerated.
In the Monitre appeared a report worded as follows.
During the month of December passed, there was a large assembly at the Luxembourg,
When everyone was in the reception room, Bonaparte ordered the servants to make a large fire.
He even repeated this order two or three times.
When someone made the remark that it was impossible to put more wood in the fireplace, he said,
That will do.
I wanted a good fire because the cold is excessive, and these ladies are nearly nude.
Advice to readers.
Decency is the order of the day.
And decency and dress would bring in its train, decency.
and morals. For their trips to Malmaison, as for every other function in life, Josephine has the
rare faculty of being always ready and ever submissive to her husband's orders. Her hours of rest,
of meals, of every kind, are arranged so as not to interfere with his work. As soon as his task is
finished, Josephine is always ready, at any hour of day or night to eat, to go out, to start on a
journey without previous notice, in a costume which becomes her and is suitable,
for the occasion. She has constantly on her lips the same smile which always seems natural and
never forced. Her voice is ever soft and soothing, with her pretty creole accent which pleases the
ear and is like the caressing touch of a loving hand. To this man of thirty years, who has never
known a home, who has always lived in an inn or a tent, she gives the delightful experience
of a well-ordered and luxurious household, a touch of domestic life. At this time Josephine has
no official role to play. She has no recognized place in the state. She is present on occasions
of ceremony only as a distinguished guest who looks on from window or balcony. She makes a point of
seeming to exercise no influence over her husband except in deeds of goodwill. This is the real
secret of her power, and she knows it. The day that she even attempted to direct his actions,
her power would be lost. Bonaparte would tolerate no Pompadour, no Marie Antoinette at his side.
as for the rest he cares little she can have all the money she wants to pay for her toilettes and her jewels to settle her old debts but political influence never
her indirect power in the form of charity and social duties receives his entire approbation as it is directed to the same object which he himself is striving to attain in all her sentiments josephine is a royalist both from natural inclination and from reasons purely personal to herself she has the
the most tender attachment to the name of the king and the Ancien regime.
The reason is not hard to find.
If Bonaparte plays the role of monk and recalls the Bourbons,
he will have at least the title of Duke and Pierre,
the dignity of marshal or constable of France,
a great position at court,
and she will have the assurance of sharing his fortune
and of never being repudiated.
Indeed, remarks one of her historians,
how in 1799 only seven years after the fall of the throne
could Josephine have any other ideas?
What was there greater in ancient France after the king?
And no one then thought that he could become king
because one does not become king.
What was there greater than Duke and Pier,
Marischal de France?
What was there higher than these dignities
to which, in the most dizzy dream of ambition,
a private individual could aspire?
She does not suspect, she cannot imagine,
that this new society demands a new form of government,
that the man who is to accomplish this task has appeared on the scene and that that man is her husband.
Bonaparte is by no means displeased with the royalist sympathies of his wife.
He wishes to gain time in his negotiations with the rebels and the Vandé to endeavor to rally them to his cause and enlist them in his armies.
For this reason he does not wish to break too abruptly with the pretender who has already made advances to him.
He knows that the emigre are only too anxious to return to France and recover at least a part of their property.
Josephine is practically the retained advocate of the royalists and the emigre,
and the favors which she solicits and is accorded, one by one, are not calculated to excite the alarm of the purchasers of the national property,
or arouse the wrath of the Jacobin.
Little by little, this immense social force lost for the France of the Revolution will flow back from every part of Europe
towards the France of the Consulate, and bring back with the habits of courtesy and elegance,
administrators for the departments, magistrates for the superior courts, diplomats for the legations,
officers for the troops, co-euxes for the salons, personages for the court. Bonaparte feels that
the glory of the past represented by illustrious names is necessary to the splendor of the future,
and to create a France worthy of the destiny which she prepares for her, he has need of all her
children. Without in the least suspecting the fact, Josephine thus played a most important
role in that policy of fusion, which was one of the greatest principles of Napoleon's administration,
and one which specially characterized it. On the 20th January 1800, at Mortofontaine was celebrated
the marriage by civil forms only of Caroline Bonaparte and Joachim Murat. According to Madame
Ricamier, Caroline, although not so beautiful as her sister, Pauline, was very
attractive. She strongly possessed the Napoleonic type of countenance and had much intelligence
and a strong will. Murat, who at that time was only a general of division, was the most
striking cavalier in the French army. Young, handsome, full of life, with his brilliant uniforms
on the field of battle or in a review, he attracted universal attention. Napoleon at first was
very much opposed to the match. When Murat was sent to Paris after the armistice of Carasco,
he was too attentive to the wife of his general-in-chief,
and boasted rather indiscreetly of his bon fortune.
Later he fell in love with Caroline during her visit to Milan
and was accepted by her.
To secure the consent of Napoleon,
they solicited the good offices of Josephine.
What better means of convincing Bonaparte that,
if Josephine had ever favored Murat's suit,
all was now over?
Josephine warmly espoused his cause,
with the double object of putting an end to Napoleon's suspicions.
and of securing in Murat a strong ally in her constant struggle against the enmity of the Bonaparts.
On the occasion of her marriage, Caroline received from her brothers a daughter a daughter of 40,000
francs, the same amount that they had given to Pauline. In addition, she had a trousseau and
presence of the value of 12,000 francs. Nearly all the members of the family were present at the
ceremony, but no mention can be found of the First Consul and his wife. The young couple took up their
residents in the Hotel de Brione near the Tuileries and continued to be on the warmest terms of intimacy with Josephine.
After living for three months at the Luxembourg on the 19th of February 1800, Napoleon moved to the
Tuileries, which became his principal place of residence during the consulate and the empire.
He occupied the suite of Louis XIV on the first floor, facing on the gardens, while Josephine
lived below him on the ground floor in the former apartment of Marie Antoinette.
as at the luxembourg life at the tuileries at first was very simple it was too soon for the appointment of chamberlains and ladies of the palace on the day of the formal entrance of the first consul to the tuileries josephine who had preceded him in a private carriage was modestly placed in a window of the pavillon de flas to view the ceremony
but two days later when bonaparte received the diplomatic corps she had all of the members presented to her and held a court which recalled that of the queens during the early days it was not easy to constitute a new society at the tuileries
bonaparte himself had had no experience in the world having passed all his time in the army he had but few acquaintances at paris and found it necessary constantly to call upon his colleague le brun for information regarding persons and things
There would also have been a great outcry from the Republicans if he had immediately received the personages of the Ancien Regime, the Royalists and the Emigre. These persons at first affected to draw a line between the First Consul and his wife. While they did not mount the steps to the apartment of Bonaparte on the first floor, they filled the rooms of the former Vicomtesse de Boernet on the floor below. Each decade, the First Consul gave in the Galerie de Diane a grand dinner with 200 couvert.
as the russian princess delgaruki wrote at this time it was not exactly a court but it was no longer a camp as often as he could lay down the cares of office generally three or four times a month bonaparte went to malmason for a day's rest
this estate purchased by josephine during his absence in egypt had become his favorite place of recreation the chateau was situated in a fine location near the village of rey on the left bank of the seine about nine miles from peasant
Paris. The building, which has recently been restored and presented to the state as a museum
of Napoleonic souvenirs, consisted then as now of three stories with a plain facade and a tile
roof. On the ground floor, at the left of the large vestibule were the dining room, the council
chamber, and the library. In the other wing, the billiard-room, the boudoir, the salon of Josephine,
and the gallery. From the library there was access to the garden by a little bridge thrown across
the moat which runs along this side of the chateau.
From the billiard room there was a staircase to the first floor.
Here at the right, an ante-chamber opened into Josephine's bedroom, which was oval in form
and hung in red. For many years this was their common chamber, and here, Josephine drew
her last breath while Napoleon was in exile at Elba. Two other adjoining rooms and a bathroom
completed the private suite. In the other wing were the rooms occupied by Oughtons after
her marriage. In the middle there was a long corridor from which opened several small rooms,
occupied by the aide-de-con duty or invited guests. Malmaison was for Josephine what the
Petitriano had been for Marie Antoinette. In her time, the grounds extended as far as the village
of Ruey, and were beautifully decorated with exotic trees, rare plants, exquisite flowers,
and small lakes with their white and black swans. At Melmaison, Napoleon Al,
appeared at his best. The great man relaxed and threw off his cares. He was amiable,
familiar, indulgent. He took part in the games with the ardor of a youth. He joked, he told
stories with the spirit which astonished everybody. He was an admirable host, affable,
spiritual, putting all his guests at their ease. At that time he had not yet abandoned his
Republican simplicity, and adopted the tiresome and chilling etiquette of the imperial court.
End of Chapter 8 through 10
Chapter 11 and 12 of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
11. 1800
The question of heredity.
The winter season of 1800 in Paris was very brilliant.
On the 26th January, the new minister of the interior,
Lucien Bonaparte,
gave a grand ball in honor of his sister, Caroline, and her husband,
at the magnificent Hotel Brissac, Rue de Grenel,
which he occupied at the time.
Dinners and balls, which recalled the fate of the Fermier-Generos under the monarchy,
were also given by the great bankers of the day.
All classes of society took part in the social world,
and the dance was never so popular.
For a period of ten years,
as the Parisians had been deprived of the popular mass balls of the opera,
and their reopening was one of the features of the carnival.
But while Paris danced and played,
the First Consul was occupied with very serious problems.
The internal affairs of France were in very bad shape.
The treasury was empty.
Civil war still raged in the Vande.
The soldiers were ill-fed and ill-clad,
and the armies were demoralized from frequent defeats.
The foreign situation was equally discouraging.
The English government had declined,
his Pacific overtures, and with Austria it was clear that there was no chance of peace except
through victory. During the winter, the energy and activity of Bonaparte were everywhere in evidence,
and the sudden resurrection of France at this time is one of the most remarkable events in modern
history. Instantly as if by enchantment, writes the English historian Allison,
everything was changed. Order reappeared out of chaos, talent emerged from obscurity,
vigor arose out of the elements of weakness.
The arsenals were filled.
The veterans crowded to their eagles,
the conscripts joyfully repaired to the frontier.
Lavandé was pacified, the exchequer began to overflow.
In little more than six months after Napoleon's accession,
the Austrians were forced to seek refuge under the canon of Ulm.
Italy was regained.
Unanimity and enthusiasm prevailed among the people,
and the revived energy of the nation was launched into a career
of conquest. On the 6th of May, Bonaparte left Paris for Italy. Two weeks later he crossed
the Grand Saint-Bernard. On the second day of June, he entered Milan. On the 14th, he decisively
defeated the Austrians at Marengo, and at one stroke regained nearly all of the territory
in northern Italy, which had been lost during his absence in Egypt. On his return to France,
Napoleon received a perfect ovation at every stage of his journey. When he entered Paris,
the night of the 2nd of July, after an absence of less than two months, the enthusiasm was
indescribable. An innumerable crowd gathered in the Tuileries gardens to cheer him, and he expressed
his pleasure to Borienne by saying, The noise of these acclamations is as sweet to me as the
sound of the voice of Josephine. Twenty years later on the Rock of St. Helena, he spoke of this
as one of the happiest days of his life. During Napoleon's absence occurred the so-called
conspiracy of Marengo, the details of which are little known.
While he was still engaged in putting down the civil war at home, and repelling the foreign
invaders from the frontiers of France, his brothers Joseph and Lucien had already begun the
struggle for the supreme power in the event of his death. The question of heredity, which was
to be the source of his greatest troubles, and one of the causes of his final downfall, had
already been raised before his supreme power was even definitely established.
As early as the month of February, Lucien was exchanging views with Bernadotte,
who, during the consulate and the Empire, never lived a day without plotting to overthrow Napoleon.
A month before the departure of the First Consul for Italy in his cabinet at the Tullery,
Foucher, regarding Lucien with his terrible eyes, exclaimed,
I will have the Minister of the Interior himself arrested if I learned that he is conspiring.
A contemporary who endeavors to find excuses for Lucien,
and to defend him from the charge of conspiracy is forced to admit that,
the political immorality, the civil dishonesty of his administration,
the disgraceful peculations, the insatiable cupidity of the agents by whom he was surrounded,
did much to injure his brother's government.
Joseph, for his part, acted much more discreetly,
but he let his brother know that he wished to be designated as his successor.
Nothing in the new constitution gave this power to the First Council,
who had been elected for ten years and was re-eligible.
With his childish vanity, Joseph could see no reason why he should not be as acceptable to the French nation as the conqueror of Italy and Egypt,
and thought that it only needed a word from Napoleon to amend in his favor a constitution adopted by the practically unanimous vote of three million citizens.
In a conversation with the First Consul the day before his departure for Italy,
Joseph seems to have raised for the first time the question of the consular heredity,
and he showed his hand more clearly in a letter written on the 24th of May.
In all Corsicans there is a strong sentiment of the clan,
from which Napoleon himself was not exempt.
Joseph felt that as the eldest he was the chief of the clan,
the head of the family.
Therefore, it was not a favour which he solicited,
it was a right which he claimed.
But he did not rely entirely upon the support of Napoleon to gain his point.
Upon the suggestion of his friend Mieux,
a council was held at Oteu,
at which were present nearly all the leading members of the former assemblies.
The possibility of the death of Bonaparte and the question of his successor were discussed.
But the name of Joseph was not even mentioned.
After wavering between Lafayette and Carnot,
they decided in favor of the organizer of victory,
whom Napoleon had recalled from exile and made minister of war.
At this same time, an alliance was formed between Talleyrand and Foucher,
which was to bear its full fruit,
Fourteen years later, when these two arch-conspirators and underhanded enemies of Napoleon were to precipitate his fall and bring back the Bourbons.
At this time, however, their plans only contemplated the formation of a triumvirate, consisting of themselves, and one accommodating colleague.
Lucien was not involved in any of these later schemes.
On the 14th May he lost his wife, and, for at least ten years he retired to his country estate, abandoning entirely the direction of his department.
in the meantime joseph was so anxious to obtain an immediate response from his brother that he could not remain quietly at paris and set out for italy when he arrived at milan the victory of marengo had settled the whole question
napoleon was now the absolute master of france and the decision of the matter was entirely in his own hands he was fully informed of the plots and counterplots but chose to ignore them all the only outcome was that carneau lost his portfolio
leaving for italy in the costume of the institute on his return napoleon presides over the council of state in the uniform of general it is only after morango that he feels his place secure as head of state
it was not until the seventh of september that he finally and definitely replied to the proposals of the pretender i have received sir your letter i thank you for the polite things you say to me you cannot hope to return to france it would be necessary for you to march you would be necessary for you to march
over 500,000 dead bodies. Sacrifice your interest to the repose and happiness of France.
History will give you credit for your action. The conspiracy of Marengo is interesting because
it marks the first grouping of factions, which on several occasions were again to come to the
front during the empire, and because it reveals the principal weakness of Napoleon's personal
regime. These plots convinced him of the necessity of providing for the consular succession.
The new constitution, perhaps intentionally, had left the matter in very vague shape.
For the first time, Napoleon now fully realized the necessity of facing this question of heredity,
so important to himself, to his brothers, and above all, to Josephine.
Napoleon at the age of 31 could not abandon the hope of an heir, hence the constant menace
of divorce for Josephine, who after four years of marriage could hardly expect to bear another child.
her hope of a restoration of the bourbons
had now been extinguished by the action of her husband.
In this dilemma, she naturally sought the support of such former
Jacobin as Foucher Andreal,
who were opposed to the extension of the powers of the First Consul,
and, above all, to the designation of his successor.
As for Napoleon's brothers,
they felt that there could be no question of their rights to the succession.
One would think, as Napoleon once expressed it,
that he, as the younger brother, had usurped the place and the rights of Joseph as successor to their father, the late king.
They were also so convinced that it was impossible for Napoleon himself to have any children,
that they could not conceive of his repudiating Josephine and marrying a younger woman in the hope of having an heir.
Lucien apparently recognized the rights of Joseph as the elder,
and was willing to await his turn as heir presumptive, especially as his brother had no children.
The two brothers therefore sought each in his own way
to secure the adoption of the principle of designation
after which each one hoped to be chosen.
With the death of his charming wife, Catherine Boyer,
who notwithstanding her common origin,
had finished by gaining the love of all the family
as well as the general esteem of society,
Lucien had more and more neglected his official duties
and plunged into all kinds of dissipation.
Napoleon was obliged to call him to account,
and there were several unpleasant scenes between the brothers.
Matters were finally brought to a head
by the publication of the famous Parallel.
One morning, towards the end of October,
Foucher entered the cabinet of the first consul
and handed him a little pamphlet entitled,
Parallel entre Cesar, Cromwell, and Bonaparte.
Two paragraphs were specially marked,
which suggested the idea of heredity
and pushed the candidacy of the brothers of the consul.
This brochure written by Lucien, although he denied it, and widely distributed under the Frank of the Minister of the Interior, had caused a great sensation in all the departments.
Lucien is summoned from his country place, Plessie, and there is a violent scene between him and Foucher in the presence of the First Council.
Napoleon remains a passive spectator of the discussion.
Josephine enters the room and takes part.
She seats herself upon Napoleon's knee.
and runs her fingers gently
through his hair and over his face.
I beg you, Bonaparte, she says.
Do not make yourself a king.
It is this wretch Lucien who urges you to it.
Do not listen to him.
With much regret, Napoleon asked for Lucien's resignation,
and to cover his disgrace
sent him as ambassador to Madrid with an enormous salary.
This exile and disguise of Lucien
is not all that Josephine gains
from the publication of the parallel and the opportune intervention of Foucher.
Napoleon is now fully convinced of the necessity of adopting the principle of the right of designation,
but the choice of the individual presents many difficulties.
He puts aside Joseph, a most worthy man, but with no application and no capacity for public affairs.
Lucien is now out of the question.
For a moment he thinks of Eugen de Beau Arnais, who would have been the best choice of all,
but decides that he is too young and inexperienced.
The next day he makes his decision.
It is not necessary, he says,
to cudgel our brains to find a successor.
I have found one.
It is Louis.
He has all of the good qualities
and none of the faults of his brothers.
Josephine was delighted when Napoleon informed her
of his choice in which unconsciously
he may have been influenced by his wife.
Louis has an excellent heart,
a very superior mind.
she said.
He loves Bonaparte as a lover loves his mistress.
From that moment her plan was settled.
Louis must marry Otense.
Twelve, 1800 to 1802.
Marriage of Ortense
Louis Bonaparte, who was born on the 2nd of September 1778,
was nine years younger than Napoleon,
who regarded him very much in the light of an adopted son.
In February 1792,
when Napoleon returned from his home in Corsica to his regiment at Okson, after an absence of nearly
17 months, he brought with him his favorite younger brother. On his meager pay of 100 francs a month,
he had undertaken this care in order to relieve to some extent the financial difficulties of his
widowed mother. In his shabby little room with its sparse furniture there was no place for Louis,
and he slept on a mattress in an adjoining cabinet. Napoleon himself prepared their frugal meals.
He gave his brother lessons in mathematics and generally supervised his education.
At a later date he complained of his brother's ingratitude
and reminded him that for his sake he had deprived himself even of the necessaries of life.
The blindness of Napoleon to the faults of his brothers and sisters
is almost the only weak point in his character,
as it also reveals one of the most attractive sides of his heart.
He never could do too much for his family,
who almost without exception repaid him with the big,
acist in gratitude. They all seemed to think that their good fortune was due entirely to their own
merits, and not at all to the senseless partiality of their great brother. In 1795, Napoleon
procured for Louis admission to the military school at Chalon. At this time, he wrote in the
warmest terms of his brother's fine qualities of heart and mind. The following year, Louis,
who was then only 18 years of age, was one of Napoleon's aide-de-con in Italy. He was his messmate,
his private secretary, his man of confidence. At this time, Louis was splendid company,
always full of life and spirits. At Milan, he contracted a disease which in a short time
not only affected his health, but seemed to change his moral character. For the rest of his life,
he was a regular hypochondriac, constantly worrying about his health and persuaded that he was
doomed to an early death. During the Egyptian expedition, Louis again acted as aide-de-can to his brother,
but was sent back to France with dispatches sometime before the return of Napoleon.
In January 1800, when only 22 years of age, he was appointed chief of brigade.
He then took up his residence in Paris, where he associated with men of letters
and occupied himself with everything except his military career.
He took no part in the Marengo campaign during which he remained at Paris,
occupied with his literary pursuits.
None of his friends seemed to understand the radical change.
in his character. Napoleon thought that a journey might rouse him from his melancholy,
and proposed a trip to Germany, which Louis eagerly accepted, to escape, he said later,
the solicitations for his marriage with Artans. It is impossible, however, for us to believe
that Artans was so disagreeable, or the plans of Josephine so objectionable to him at this time
as he tries to make out in his reflections upon the government of Holland, drawn up
twenty years later. Even if Josephine, as early as August
1800, had formed in her secret heart the project which she carried out
a year later, she certainly had not made any moves which could arouse in
Louis the apprehension that she had designs upon his independence.
At that time, Ortense was only 17 years of age. She was not very pretty,
but was singularly attractive from the beauty of her form and the grace of her
movements. Her nose was large and her mouth ugly, with her mother's
poor teeth, but her blonde hair and soft, violet eyes gave to her face an expression of
exquisite tenderness. The Tut Ensemble was one which attracted and fascinated everybody.
She had been educated at the fashionable school of Madame Compin, and possessed all the
accomplishments of a young lady of good family. She sang and danced well, she played the
harp and the piano, she embroidered, she excelled in all the little tasks of the salon,
she was quite literary in her taste. She was very literary in her taste. She was
was a fine equestrian and took a leading part in the sports and pastimes of the chateau life.
In character, she was very sweet and amiable, but became very obstinate when she was crossed.
Her finest trait was her lifelong adoration of her mother, which, it must be confessed,
Josefine had done little to deserve.
After their return from Martinique, her mother had placed her at the age of seven in a convent.
When that was closed during the revolution, she was apprenticed to a semptress.
Later she was practically abandoned for four years by her mother in the school at Saint-Germain.
On the few rare occasions that Josephine visited the school,
she was prodigal in her demonstrations of affection,
with her kisses which cost her so little,
for this mother was coquette, even with her children.
Ortense regarded her mother as a wonderful being,
and returned her affection a hundredfold.
In her innocence, she knew nothing of her mother's worldly life,
of her struggle for existence, of the connoissexistent.
of the connections she formed either from taste or necessity.
She knew that her father was the Vicomte de Boernet,
a handsome cavalier who attended the Queen's Balls,
was president of the Constituent Assembly,
general-in-chief of the Army of the Rhine,
and guillotined under the terror.
Her conception of her father's career
was similar to that which we find in many of the histories
and equally far from the truth.
She was proud of her name,
one of the finest in France,
and also of her mother, whom she considered worthy of her father.
Ortense had therefore been much chagrined when her mother married an obscure Republican general of doubtful nobility,
who had been absolutely unknown before the revolution.
She had only seen him once before the marriage at a dinner given by Barras at the Luxembourg in January 1796.
Ortense, who was then not quite thirteen, had been taken from school for the occasion.
She was jealous of the attentions to her mother of the little general whose name she did not even know.
She said, he talked with great vivacity and seemed only interested in my mother.
She next saw Bonaparte for a few days only on his return from Italy, and then again at the painful scene in the Rue de la Victoire,
when she implored him to pardon her mother without very clearly understanding what her mother had done.
Under all the circumstances, would it not be strange if she had any love for her mother?
her stepfather. Like most young girls, Hortense had a very sentimental side to her nature.
She wished to marry for love, and to find love in her marriage.
It has often been said that D'Eauque, the favorite aide-de-con of Napoleon, loved her,
and that she reciprocated his affection. The first consul had thought of him for one of his
sisters. He certainly would have accepted him for his stepdaughter.
Durek was the gentleman, perhaps not of an illustrious family, but
of better birth certainly than Batioki, Leclair or Murat.
But Dureauc was sent on a diplomatic mission to Berlin, and nothing came of this
incipient love affair.
With her usual selfishness, Josephine, in considering the Parti who presented themselves,
never thought of the happiness of her daughter, but only of her personal interests.
But this was usual in those days.
Her aunt, Madame Renaudin, certainly had not thought of Josephine's happiness when she
married her to Alexandre de Boernet.
Even if Josephine had not already made up her mind to bring about the marriage of Louis and
Ortense, she would have been decided by the attempt to assassinate the first consul on Christmas
Eve 1800. The conspirators knew that he expected to be present at the opera that evening
to hear the new oratorio of the creation by Hayden, the most popular composer of the day.
They expected that his carriage would take the usual route by the Rues Saint-Sais, which is no
longer in existence. This was a long, narrow street bordering the carousel, and running from
the seine to the rue Saint-honouré, where it ended near the rue Richelieu, in which the
opera was then situated. In this street, an infernal machine installed in a one-horse cart
was placed at a point which Bonaparte's carriage would pass, and the time that it would take
him to come from the Tuileries was carefully calculated, so that the machine would explode at the right
moment. After dinner, Napoleon, who was fatigued from a hard day's work, had fallen asleep on a
sofa, and was with difficulty aroused and persuaded to start by the ladies of the Tuileries,
Josephine, Caroline, and Hortense, who did not wish to miss the performance. At eight o'clock,
he set out, accompanied by Lan, Bessier, and an aide-de-con, and followed by a small escort
of mounted grenadiers. The coachman, who had already begun his Christmas celebration, was half-drunk,
at a furious rate.
This fact alone saved Bonaparte's life.
The carriage passed the infernal machine
and had just rounded the corner
into the Rue Richelieu when the explosion occurred.
Lann and Bessier wished to stop,
but Bonaparte ordered the coachman to proceed.
A minute later, he entered the luge with his usual calm face
and demanded a copy of the libretto.
The life of Josephine was also saved
by an incident equally trivial.
She was wearing that evening for the first time a magnificent oriental shawl presented to Bonaparte by the Sultan.
Rapp, the aide-de-con duty, who was to escort the ladies, ventured to remark to Josephine that she had not arranged the shawl with her usual grace.
At her request, he showed her how the shawl was draped by the Egyptian ladies.
The party then descended the staircase of the pavilion de flor and entered their carriage.
They traversed the carousel and had just turned into the Rue Senni.
says when the machine exploded.
The windows of the carriage were shattered,
and the arm of Ortense was slightly cut by a piece of glass.
Rapp descended to see if the first consul had been injured,
and the carriage continued its way by another street.
When the three ladies entered the box,
Napoleon greeted them with a smile,
as if nothing unusual had happened.
The news of this dastardly outrage
in which over fifteen people lost their lives soon spread through the hall,
and the oratorio was interrupted.
while the audience arose and frantically applauded the First Consul.
A few minutes later, the party left the opera and returned to the Tuileries,
where Bonaparte received the reports of the police and the congratulations of his ministers.
This attempt on Napoleon's life was a terrible shock to Josephine.
It gave new impetus to the public demand for an heir to the First Consul,
as necessary to the security of the state.
And this, for Josephine, aroused again the dreaded specter of the divorce.
This conspiracy, following so closely on that of Arenah only two months before, which the police had discovered in time, convinced everybody that it was desirable to give the first counsel the right to designate his successor, and thus assure the heredity of the consulate, or at least the continued existence of the government as established by him.
It was no longer an academic question to be debated and postponed from time to time, but an actual urgent public necessity which demanded immediately.
immediate action. Josephine realized that the crisis had come, and was more determined than ever
to carry out her plan for the union of Louis and Ortense. If she herself could not give Napoleon
an heir, he might find one in her grandchild and his nephew the son of his favorite brother.
Although Josephine did not live to see her dream come true, all of Napoleon's plans came to
naught, and it was the son of Louis and Ortense who occupied the imperial throne as Napoleon
the third.
Louis was already tired of his tour of Germany and asked permission of his brother to return to Paris.
No sooner was he back than the strange idea possessed him of buying a country place where he went
to bury himself in midwinter.
The house which he purchased was a simple rural mansion in the woods, a league from the highway,
about midway between Morta Fontaine and Placey, the country estates of Joseph and Lucien.
He had hardly taken possession of his new home and begun some alterations when he again became uneasy
and set out for Bordeaux to rejoin his regiment, which at his request had been included in the
Army of Observation under the command of Leclair which was going to Portugal.
In July 1801, Josephine, who had not yet entirely abandoned all hope, went again to Plombier to
take the waters, which the year before had succeeded so well in the case of Madame Joseph that
after seven years of marriage, she was just on the point of presenting her husband with their first child.
A month later, Josephine returned to Manmaison to await in vain the miraculous effects of her cure.
At the end of three months, Louis was tired of his military duties and asked for a leave of absence.
After spending several weeks at the bass of Barrage to cure his rheumatism, at the end of September he came to Malmaison for a visit.
There he fell in love with Orthans, and finally,
decided upon the marriage which he had previously dreaded.
There is absolutely no truth in the statement so often made by Louis in after years that the marriage was forced upon him.
Three months elapsed between his return and the ceremony. During this period, Louis showed himself
very devoted to Artans while she seemed resigned to her lot. On the 3rd of January,
1802, the contract was signed at the Tuileries in the presence of the whole family, and the following day the
civil marriage took place, followed the same evening by a religious ceremony at the hotel in the
Rue de la Victoire. The nuptial benediction was pronounced by Cardinal Caprara, who was then
negotiating the Concordat with the French government. At the same time, Caroline and Murat,
who had only been united by a civil bond, had their marriage blessed by the church.
Josephine ardently desired the same privilege, but Napoleon absolutely refused, either from
reasons of public policy, or in order to keep the way open for a divorce if in the future he desired one.
End of chapters 11 and 12. Chapter 13 and 14 of Napoleon and Josephine, the rise of the empire by
Walter Gear. This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
13. 1802 to 1803 The Consulate for Life
On the second day of August, 1802, the Senate declared Napoleon Bonaparte, Council for Life,
with the power to name his successor.
The decree conveyed to him in its official terms the expression of
the confidence, the admiration, and the love of the French people.
In the plebiscite, he received the votes of over three and a half million Frenchmen
with less than 9,000 in the negative.
At the same time, the government gave him as a summer residence the Royal Shepard.
of Saint-Clu. This palace was built on the edge of a magnificent park on a long terrace
overlooking the Sen, with the city of Paris at a distance in the background. The main building
and the two projecting wings framed the Court of Honor. In the rear was a beautiful French
garden bordered on one side by an extension of the palace, and on the other by an alley
shaded by magnificent trees. The property which had previously belonged to private parties was
purchased by Louis XIV, and presented to his brother the Duke of Leone.
In 1785, Calonne, the prodigal controller of the finances, bought the chateau for six
million francs, and the king gave it to Marie Antoinette. She made extensive alterations in the
building and frequently resided there before the revolution. Her last visit was in the summer
of 1790, at which time she had her celebrated interview with Mirabeau.
During the revolution
all of the furniture and hangings disappeared
and the palace had to be refurbished
for the First Council.
As soon as the work was completed,
Napoleon moved there on the
20th of September.
At Saint-Clu,
Josephine occupied the apartments of Marie Antoinette
in the left wing.
The suite of the First Council
was on the ground floor in the other wing.
His cabinet was a large room
with the walls covered with books
from floor to ceiling.
He usually said,
on a small sofa placed near the mantle, which was decorated with two bronze busts of Scipio
and Hannibal. Behind the sofa in the corner of the room was the desk of his secretary
Minerval, who had taken the place of Borien, discharged for dishonesty. Adjoining the cabinet
was a small salon, where the first council received his ministers and gave private audiences.
In this salon there was a fine portrait of Gustavus Adolfus, the favorite hero of Napoleon.
The only ornament of his bedroom which faced on the garden was an antique bust of Caesar.
From the first, a rigid court etiquette was established at Saint-Clu.
D'Eauk, who was appointed governor of the palace, had a table for the officers, the aide de Kahn, and the ladies on duty.
The first consul took his meals alone with his wife, but gave formal dinners twice a week for important officials of the government.
The military household was composed of the four generals commanding the consular guard,
Lann, Bessierre, Devaux and Sulte, and the Seven Edd de Kahn, among whom were Collin-Cour,
rap, and Savarie.
There were four prefects in the same number of ladies of the palace, of whom the best known
were Monsieur de Riemuzze and his wife, the author of the celebrated memoirs.
The usages of the Court of Versailles had been copied so closely that there was even
a serious idea of reviving the custom of powdered hair, but Napoleon could not bring
himself to this, so hair was worn, on natural.
For the first time since the revolution,
religious practices were renewed.
The First Council insisted that on Sunday
everyone should go to Mass,
and the chapel at St. Clu recalled that at Versailles.
The last of October,
Napoleon and Josephine made a fortnight strip
to Normandy.
The first day they went over the field of battle
where Henry IV gained the victory of Ivory.
Then they passed a week at Rouen,
where the First Consul visited all of the principal
manufactories, and held a review of the National Guard.
Another week was spent at Havre and Dieppe,
inspecting the ports, the fortifications, and the ships under construction.
On the evening of the 14th November, the party was again back at St. Clu.
The following ten weeks were spent at St. Clue, except one day, the first week in December,
when the First Council went to the Tullery to receive the English ambassador Lord Whitworth,
who presented his credentials.
On the 23rd January, 1803, Napoleon Diane Josephine returned to the Tuilli for the winter.
In 1803, Josephine was 40 years of age. Her beauty was somewhat faded, but she was so adroit in the
use of cosmetics. She dressed with so much taste that, with her charm of manner and her air
of distinction, she could still be called a very attractive woman. No sovereign was ever more
to the manner born. She received so well.
She possessed in so high a degree
the art of saying something appropriate
and pleasant to everyone.
She had so much tact and so much presence
of mind that anyone would have thought
she was born on the steps of a throne.
She was popular with all parties and all factions.
Fouchy, who represented the element
of the revolution, was her friend,
and all the personages of the Ancien regime
regarded her as their ally.
She had done much good in her life
and had never injured anybody.
Even the severest critics
of Bonaparte had only words of praise for his wife.
All classes of society united in rendering her homage.
She was not only popular, but she deserved her popularity.
She was so much loved and admired that even the most rigid moralists had no words of
reproach for her past indiscretions.
No woman ever justified better than Josephine the saying that the eyes are the mirror of
the soul.
Her own of a deep blue color were almost always half-closed by her long
eyelids fringed with the most beautiful eyelashes in the world, and her glance was absolutely
irresistible. Another of her great charms was her voice, which was soft and musical with the
slightest creole accent. She read well and loved to read aloud. Napoleon preferred her to all
other readers. All who knew Josephine united speaking of her kindness. Madame de Rémyz
says, she had a remarkable evenness of temper, much goodwill,
and the faculty of forgetting any wrong done her.
Constant, the Valé de Chambre of Napoleon,
bears the same testimony.
Kindness, he writes,
was as inseparable from her character
as grace was from her person.
Generous to the point of prodigality,
she made everyone around her happy.
No woman was ever more loved
by those near her or more deserved to be.
Without having great intelligence,
Josephine possessed the most perfect savoir-fair.
She always found without searching the exact word for the occasion,
the expression which touched and charmed,
and this is better than Esprit,
because it comes not from the head, but from the heart.
She was also a good listener, a trait both rare and remarkable.
She never forgot a name or a face,
and on meeting someone whom she had not seen in years,
could always recall some pleasant incident connected with him.
As nearly always happens,
Josephine had the defects of her qualities.
She was generous and charitable to a fault,
but she was also prodigal to excess.
As we shall see later,
only the revenues of Imperial France
could have ever sufficed to pay her debts.
At this time, the first consul and his wife
made quite a happy household.
At St. Clu they always occupied the same chamber.
About eight o'clock, Napoleon arose,
and went to his cabinet where he breakfasted alone.
Then he began his day.
work, which generally occupied him until six o'clock when he went for a drive with Josefine.
They dined together, and he usually remained for a short chat afterwards.
Then he returned to his cabinet while Josephine played cards to finish the evening.
Between ten and eleven, a Chamberlain came to announce,
Madame, the first consul has retired.
Josephine immediately dismissed her company and went to rejoin her husband.
After their return to the Tuileries this year, Napoleon's
decided to have his own room separate from his wife.
In this connection, Madame de Ré Muzza recounts a scene which constitutes one of the strangest
episodes in her interesting but not always trustworthy memoirs.
That season, a new actress named Mademoiselle Georges had made her debut.
She had very little talent but great to beauty, and Napoleon was seduced by her charms.
Josefine was informed that the young actress on several evenings had been secretly conducted
to a quiet apartment in the chateau.
One night, Josephine kept Madame de Ré-Muzza later than usual, and talked of her grievances.
At one o'clock in the morning, they were alone in her salon, and the most complete silence reigned over the Tuileries.
Suddenly, Josephine exclaimed,
I cannot keep quiet any longer.
Mademoiselle Georges is certainly upstairs, and I am going to surprise them.
Follow me.
We will go up together.
The lady of the palace protested and tried but in vain to turn Josephine from her purpose.
They silently ascended the private staircase which led to the suite of Napoleon on the first floor.
Suddenly they heard a slight noise and stopped in their course.
It may be Rustin who was guarding the door, said Josephine.
The wretch is capable of cutting both our throats.
Pale with terror at these words, Madame de Riemusa rushed back to the salon,
carrying the candle which she held in her hand and leaving Josephine in the dark.
She followed after a few minutes and burst into laughter at the sight of her maid's
discomposed countenance. After this, they abandoned their enterprise.
Before adopting this change in his abatudes, Napoleon one day asked Madame de Riemuzza
if she thought a husband should deal to the caprices of a wife who wished always to share his
bed. The lady of the palace returned an evasive answer. Bonaparte began to laugh and
pulling her ear, a favorite trick of his when in good humor said,
You are a woman and you are all in league together.
A recent biographer tells us that there is a pretty picture of Josephine at this time
as she appeared at the wedding of Napoleon's sister, Pauline.
With her short sleeves, bare arms and her hair enclosed in a gilt net,
she looked like a Greek statue.
The first consul led her to a mirror that he might see her on all sides at once,
and kissing her shoulder said,
Ah, Josephine, I shall be jealous.
Why are you so beautiful today?
It is really a pity to destroy so idealistic a picture,
but as a matter of fact, Napoleon was not present at his sister's wedding.
The first day of January, 1803,
Pauline returned from the disastrous expedition to Saint-Dameg,
where her husband Leclair has succumbed to the unhealthy climate.
She herself was suffering from a grave malady
from which she never entirely recovered.
For two months after her return to Paris, Pauline lived with Joseph at his townhouse,
but in April she purchased for 400,000 francs the magnificent Hotel Charot in the Fubour
St. Honore, a few doors from Joseph's Hotel Marbeuf.
At this same time, there arrived in Paris, the Prince Camillo Borgesi, the chief of one of the
richest and most illustrious Roman families.
At a house party at Morta Fontaine in June, he was presented to Pauline.
By this time the young widow who was not yet 23
had somewhat recovered from her real grief over the loss of Leclair
and was tired of wearing mourning,
which did not become her style of beauty.
She was much attracted by the personality of Borgese,
but perhaps even more by the idea of being a real princess
and taking the paw over her dear sisters, Bacchoki and Murat,
as well as her sisters-in-law, Josephine, and Otis.
A few days after their first meeting,
she authorized Joseph to make overtures to the Prince.
The matter was quickly arranged, and on the 21st June,
Borgese formally announced to Joseph his desire to marry Pauline.
He only asked that the proposed alliance should remain a secret
until he had time to obtain his mother's consent.
At the same time, Pauline wrote to the First Consul to ask his approval.
The mother of the Prince was delighted with the alliance,
and on the first day of August, the engagement was announced by the Paris journals.
on the twenty third of august the marriage contract was signed only by pauline and bourgais at the hotel chateau on the fourteenth of august and again a week later the bands were published at mortofontaine
it was generally anticipated that the marriage would take place on the twenty eighth of august but just then a difficulty arose they had forgotten la clare he had died on the second day of november eighteen hundred two and the social rules re-established and formally promulgated
by the first consul himself, forbade a widow to remarry during a period of one year and six
weeks after the death of her husband. In this dilemma, Madame Bonaparte, who was as domineering
and imperious as her great son, took charge of affairs and ordered the marriage to take place.
On the 28th of August, or perhaps four days later, the ceremony was performed at Montefontaine
by an Italian priest, who may have been Cardinal Caprara himself. The exact date is uncertain, as
the certificate was never filed.
This marriage of conscience was known only to the mother and the two brothers of the bride,
Joseph and Lucien.
Napoleon was so ignorant of the matter that on the 25th of September, he gave Pauline a dinner
of 200 cuverre at the tuileries, and afterwards took her to St. Clue to pass several days
with him.
A month later, the 23rd of October, he gave another large dinner to his sister, to which
Borghese was invited.
Napoleon intended on this occasion to announce formally the date of the marriage.
He was still ignorant of the fact that a religious ceremony had taken place
without a previous civil contract as required by law.
The official marriage was finally celebrated at Mort Fortin on the 6th of November,
but the First Consul was not present.
He had left for Boulogne three days before to inspect the fleet
and did not return to St. Clu until after the middle of the month.
This absence was intentional.
Napoleon was enraged at having been thus deceived by his favorite sister, by his mother and his brothers, in short, by everybody.
At the wedding there were present all the members of the family except Napoleon and Lucien, who ten days before had secretly contracted another alliance, which was to disgrace him with his brother.
The wedding of Pauline was announced by only two lines in the official journal.
Madame Leclair has married Prince Borghese. The marriage was celebrated at Morta Fonté.
Napoleon pressed the departure of the newly married couple, and several days before his return
from Boulogne they were on their way to Italy. The marriage of Pauline had wounded the heart
of Napoleon, but almost at the same time there occurred two other weddings in the family which brought
other cares, which disturbed the family harmony, and exercised a decisive influence on the fortunes
of two of the brothers. In May or June, 1802, Lucien had met, while on a visit in the country,
a young woman with whom he became desperately enamored.
Her name was Alexandrine de Blanchon,
and at the age of 19 she had married a certain Monsieur Jubertou.
Later, she had been abandoned at Paris,
almost without resources,
when her husband sailed for Saint-Domang to try and retrieve his fortunes.
A few months later, she met Lucien.
Affairs moved quickly,
and in August, Madame Jubertu was installed in Lucien's mansion at Pleisi.
When he returned to Paris,
she was lodged in a house which communicated by a subterranean passage with Lucien's hotel in the
Rucéééééééééééééééééééé was born a child who was declared before the municipality
under the name of Jules Laurence Lucien. This eldest son of Lucien was subsequently
legitimized by the marriage of his parents and he was later called Charles after his grandfather.
This ceremony, however, was not performed until the 23rd of October 1803, and the
after Lucien had finally succeeded in obtaining a certificate of the death of Jubertu at Parrault-Pr-Prince
the 15th of June, 1802.
If the affair of Lucien was serious, in the eyes of Napoleon, that of his youngest brother, was worse.
In February, 1802, Jerome sailed with the French fleet for the West Indies.
Born the 15th of November, 1784, he was then only 17 years of age.
Two months later, he returned to Paris as bearer of D.E.
dispatches from Leclair. Promoted to the rank of Anson, he sailed again on the 18th of September
for Martinique. Soon tiring of his naval career, Jerome decided to return to France by way of New York
and sailed for Virginia on an American pilot boat. He landed at Norfolk the 20th of July 1803,
and a week later he was in Washington. During his stay there, he met at Baltimore a very
attractive girl of about his own age, named Elizabeth Patterson, the daughter of a wealthy merchant,
and on the 24th of December they were married.
The Charger d'affaire at Washington, Pichon, had done everything in his power to prevent the marriage.
He wrote Mr. Patterson and Jerome to point out that any marriage contracted without the consent
of Madame Bonaparte during her lifetime, under the French law, would be absolutely null and
void.
Jerome was too much in love to hesitate, and the young lady and her father would,
were willing to take a chance.
When the news reached France,
the First Council sent his brother peremptory orders to return,
but owing to various causes,
Jerome did not reach Europe until a year later.
14. 1803 to 1804.
The Royalist Plots
On the 27th of March, 1802,
the long war between England and France
had been ended by the Treaty of Amiens,
which was very popular in both countries.
Unfortunately, the peace was to last only a year.
On the 13th of March, 1803, at the Tuileries occurred the celebrated scene between Bonaparte and the English ambassador, which presaged the renewal of the struggle.
Once a month, the First Council was accustomed to receive the ambassadors and their wives in Josephine's apartment.
This audience was always a very ceremonious affair.
The ministers were conducted to a salon, and when all were present, the First Council and his wife appeared.
appeared, followed by a prefect and a lady of the palace. After the formal presentations had been
made, Napoleon and Josephine carried on a short conversation and then withdrew. On the present
occasion, Madame de Rémusa entered Josephine's room a few minutes before the hour fixed for the
reception. She found Bonaparte there sitting on the floor and playing gaily with the baby
Napoleon, the child of Louis and Ortense, who was then only five months old. At the same time, he
amused himself by commenting on the toilets of the two ladies and giving his advice about their
dresses. He laughed continuously and seemed to be in the best possible humor. In a few minutes he
was notified that the ambassadors had all arrived. Getting up, his whole expression suddenly changed.
The laughter left his lips and his features became very severe, exclaiming, let us go, ladies.
He rushed from the room and entered the salon. Without saluting anyone, he walked directly to
English minister and immediately began to complain of the measures of his government.
His anger seemed to increase from moment to moment and rose to a point which terrified the
whole assembly. The harshest words, the most violent menaces issued from his trembling lips.
No one dared to make a movement, and Josephine looked on mute with astonishment.
The phlegmatic Englishman was so disconcerted that he could hardly find a word to reply.
Leaving the dumbfounded ambassador, Bonaparte spoke to two of the other ministers, then returned to Lord Whitworth and made a few polite personal remarks.
Suddenly his anger seemed to return.
You are then decided on war, he exclaimed.
We have already had it for ten years.
You wish to have it for ten years more, and you force me into it.
Why these armments?
If you arm, I shall arm too.
You can perhaps destroy it.
France. But intimidate her? Never. At this moment his face was red with anger and he seemed in a paroxysm
of fury. Two months later, Lord Whitworth demanded his passports and the longest contest was resumed,
which was only to end on the field of Waterloo. Napoleon immediately began his preparations,
and as a preliminary to the gigantic struggle, decided to visit in state the northern
departments, and in particular the great port of Antwerp. That pistol pointed out of
at the heart of England. The First Consul decided that the journey should be made with the
greatest magnificence, and that his wife should accompany him in order to make use of her well-known
powers of attraction. He had the crown jewels taken out of the safe deposits where they were
stored and gave them to Josephine, who, we may be sure, was not reluctant to employ them.
Two of the ladies of the palace, Madame de Riemuzza and Tellouet, were chosen to accompany
the party, and the First Consul gave each of them thirty thousand francs for the
expenses of their toilette. On the 24th of June, 18003, they left Saint-Clue, with a cortege of several carriages, two generals of the guard, the aide-de-con, duroc, and two prefects of the palace, of whom Monsieur de Riemuzza was one.
The first night was passed at the country home of Joseph, Morta Fontaine, where nearly the whole Bonaparte family was reunited.
Here a very unpleasant scene occurred.
Just before dinner, Joseph notified Napoleon that he in
intended to take in their mother and place her at his right hand with Josephine on his left.
The first consul was offended at this arrangement which put his wife in second place,
but Joseph refused to yield. When the dinner was announced, Napoleon gave his arm to Joseph
entered unceremoniously before everyone and placed her by his side. The whole party was so disarranged
that poor meek Madame Joseph found herself at the foot of the table, as if she did not
belonged to the family. During the dinner, Napoleon occupied himself exclusively with his wife
and did not address a word to anyone else. The second night was passed at Amiens, where the
first consul was received with enthusiasm impossible to describe. The people detached the horses
and drew the carriage themselves. Josephine was moved to tears by the cries of joy, the garlands
of flowers which crowned the root, the triumphal arches erected in honor of the restorer of France,
the benedictions which were too general not to have been absolutely spontaneous.
In several of the cities of Flanders, the mayors in their addresses ventured to suggest
that the First Consul should replace his precarious title by one more in accord with the high destiny
to which he was called. Bonaparte could hardly conceal his pleasure at these words,
but interrupted the orator to say in a tone of assumed anger that he could not think of changing
the republic. Like Caesar, he rejected the crown,
which nevertheless he was not reluctant to have presented to him.
After these receptions, the first consul usually mounted his horse
and showed himself to the people who received him with cheers.
Then he visited the public buildings and the manufactories in his usual hurried manner.
In the evening he attended the dinner offered him,
which was the most tiresome part of his day's work, for as he expressed it,
I am not made for pleasure.
Everywhere in old France the party was received with the same enthusiasm,
but in Flanders there was not so much warmth.
On arriving at Antwerp, the First Consul showed great interest in this important port,
and gave orders for the great works which were afterwards carried out.
The entry into Brussels was magnificent.
At the gate of the city, the First Consul was received by several regiments of troops.
He mounted his horse, and Josephine found a superb carriage placed at her disposal.
The whole city was decorated.
The artillery fired salutes.
all the church bells were rung.
The streets were thronged by the people,
and the July day was perfect.
During the week there was a succession of Feet.
It was on one of these occasions
that Telleran replied in a manner so adroit
and so flattering to a sudden question of Bonaparte,
who demanded how he had made his large fortune so quickly.
Nothing easier, replied the minister.
I bought government securities
on the day before the 18 Brumere,
and sold them.
the day after.
From Brussels, the party returned by way of liege and sedan to Saint-Clu, where they arrived
on the 11th of August after an absence of seven weeks.
Josephine was delighted with this trip, during which she left everywhere recollections
of her charm and grace which were never to be effaced.
This triumphal progress of Bonaparte through the northern departments excited to the highest
degree the rage of the royalists, and plots were immediately formed for his removal.
The heads of this conspiracy were the Chouin leader, George Cadudal, and the former Republican
General Pichreux.
Moreau, the victor of Hoan-Linden, considered by many as the second soldier of France, was also
gravely implicated.
Not far from Dieppe, there is a cliff 250 feet high.
This was the point where Cadudel entered France on the night of the 22nd of August, 1803.
It was a place well known to smugglers, who nightly climbed the rock with the aid of a shipkings.
hung from the top. By the same route, Pichque and several other conspirators arrived several weeks later.
Walking by night and hiding by day, they all eventually arrived at Paris, where, under different
disguises, they alluded for a long time the vigilance of the police. On a dark night in January,
Pishke had an interview with Morrow on the Boulevard de la Madeline. The two generals had not met
since the days that on the borders of the Rhine they were gloriously fighting the battles of France.
The meeting was not entirely harmonious, and the Count d'artre was deceived by false reports
when he exclaimed with joy,
Now that our two generals are in accord, I shall soon be back in France.
During this time, Bonaparte was far more nervous and uneasy than on the field of battle,
where he always displayed the greatest calm.
He directed the movements of the secret police and stimulated their zeal.
In the midst of these hidden perils, Josephine showed great courage.
With her usual kindness of heart, she urged her irritated husband not to confound the innocent
with the guilty, and not to hold the whole royalist party responsible for the acts of a few fanatics.
Unfortunately, Napoleon did not listen to these wise counsels.
In the state of excitement to which his nerves had been wrought up by the renewal of these
infamous attempts on his life, he decided on a policy of vengeance which should strike terror
to the hearts of his foes.
At a special meeting of the Council
on the night of the 14th February
the only subject discussed
was the Cadudal-Pischruh conspiracy
and orders were issued
for the immediate arrest of Morrow.
When a great crime
is under investigation in France,
the prosecutor always enjoins
upon the agents of justice.
The woman in this case was Madame Morrow.
Without the jealousy
and petty vanity of this woman,
her husband, instead of meeting
an ignominious death, fighting in the ranks of the enemies of his country, would have become like
Davout, Massena and Né, a duke and prince, a marichel de France. Morro had met Bonaparte for the first
time after his return from Egypt, and the two celebrated generals had become quite friendly.
On the 18 Brumere, Moro had taken an act of part in the coup d'etat. Exactly a year later,
on the 9th November 1800, he married a Mademoiselle Ullo, who had been a companion of Ortaise in the
of Madame Campan.
Josephine had contributed much
to bring about this match,
which she thought would be useful
to the interests of the First Council.
Ten days after the wedding,
Moro left Paris to take command
of the Army of Germany,
and on the 3rd of December 1800,
he gained the brilliant victory
of Owen Linden,
which led to the peace
of Lunéville two months later.
Shortly after the battle,
Madame Moro rejoined her husband in Germany,
and her pride was increased
by the sight of the Eklah with which he
was everywhere received. On their return to Paris, the Amour Propre of Madame Moro was
wounded on several occasions by what she considered to be the incivility or social slights
of the First Council. Like Josephine, she was the daughter of a Creole and her mother who was
a sensitive, as well as a very vindicative woman, told her that she was younger, prettier
and better educated than Madame Bonaparte, that her husband had commanded as large armies
and rendered as brilliant services to the Republic as Bonaparte,
and that there was no reason why General and Madame Moro
should occupy a second place in the state.
There were only too many persons at Paris,
both Republicans and Royalists,
who were interested in fanning the flames.
The royalists in particular paid very marked attentions to Madame Moro,
and frequented her handsome hotel in the Rue d'Anjou-Sin-Hournore.
Bonaparte was exasperated by the petty social war
which was waged against himself and his wife.
He detested the pinpricks
and feared them more than the strokes of a dagger.
Influenced by his wife,
Maraud refused an invitation for dinner at the Tuileries,
and also declined to accompany the first consul to a review.
This coldness shortly degenerated into declared enmity.
The city hotel of the general and his handsome country palace,
Gros Bois, soon became centers of opposition
to the consular government.
When Madame de Rémymuzat arrived,
at the Tuilerie one February morning, she found Josefine much troubled.
Napoleon was seated near the fireplace playing with the little Napoleon.
Do you know what I have done? he said. I have just given the order to arrest Moro.
He continued,
Twenty times have I prevented him from compromising himself. I have warned him that they would
embroil us, and he felt that I was right. But he is feeble and proud. The women directed him,
the parties urged him on.
Thus speaking, Bonaparte arose, went to his wife, took her by the chin, and raised her head.
Everybody has not a good wife like mine.
You are crying, Josephine, but why? Are you afraid?
No, replied she, but I do not like what they will say.
Then turning to the lady of the palace, Bonaparte continued,
I have no hatred, no desire for vengeance.
I have deeply reflected before.
arresting Moro. I could have closed my eyes and given him time to escape, but people would have
said that I was afraid to put him on trial. I can convince them that he is guilty. I am the
government. Everything will be easily settled. At the trial, the evidence against Moro was not
conclusive. He was condemned to two years in prison, but was accorded the permission to retire
to America. In order to furnish him with funds for his exile, Napoleon purchased
his Paris house for 800,000 francs, much more than its real value, and presented it to Bernadotte.
Also, his handsomest state of Gros, which he gave to Bertier.
Pichreux was finally betrayed by an old companion in arms, one of his most intimate friends,
who came to the police and offered to give him up for a hundred thousand crowns.
On the last day of February he was arrested in Paris, and six weeks later was found strangled
in prison.
His death has often been charged to Napoleon, but without the slightest evidence.
On the 9th of March, Cadudel was taken at 7 o'clock in the evening in the Place deion,
and was executed the last week in June.
According to the police reports, the conspirators had expected the early arrival in France
of a prince of the royal house.
Attention was at first directed to the cliff of Beville, near Dieppe,
where Cadudal and Pige Gru were known to have entered the country,
but the watch was in vain. Then the search was turned to the banks of the Rhine.
It was learned that the young Duke d'Angain, the son of the Duke de Bourbon, was at
Ettenheim in the Grand Duchy of Baden just across the river. As a youth of twenty, he had served
twelve years before in the army of the emigre, organized by his grandfather the prince de Conde for the
invasion of France. In 1801, after the peace of Lunéville, he had laid down his arms and taken up his
residence in the former chateau of Cardinal de Roan on the right bank of the Rhine ten miles from
Strasbourg. Here he lived the life of a private citizen in the company of a young and charming
woman who was devoted to him, the Princess de Roan. An under-officer of the Gendarmerie was
secretly sent and disguised to Ettenheim in search of information. The prince at this time had
with him an immigre by the name of Tumourri, which the German servants pronounced Tumerier,
and the spy reported that the French
traitor du Morier was with the Duke Dengay.
This information reached Paris on the 10th of March 1804, and on the same day, a servant of Cadudal
deposed that a young man who was treated with the utmost respect, on several occasions had been
in conference with the conspirators at Paris.
On the strength of these various reports, the First Council jumped to the conclusion that the
young Bourbon Prince was deeply implicated in the conspiracy against his life.
A special meeting of the Council was held at the Tuileries.
at 10 o'clock in the evening on the 10th of March, at which were present the three consuls
and all the ministers. It was decided to issue orders for the immediate arrest of the Duke
Dengen and the supposed general Dumourier. Coulincourt was sent with a letter to the Grand
Duke of Baden, explaining this violation of German territory. Five days later, 30 dragoons and
25 gendarmes under the command of Colonel Ordinner crossed the river at Reno, opposite Ettenheim,
and surrounded the chateau just as the day was beginning to break.
The prince was taken without any resistance
and was conducted directly to Strasbourg
where he was interned in the citadel.
At the end of three days,
he was placed in a postal chaise
and transferred to the chateau of Vincennes at Paris,
where he arrived late on the afternoon of the 20th of March.
Let us now see what was taking place at Paris during this time.
On Passion Sunday, the 18th of March,
Madame de Riemusa took up her duties again as a dame du Palais.
Early in the morning, she went to the Tuileries to be present at the Mass, which at this time was celebrated with much pomp.
Afterwards, Josephine held an informal reception in the salons and then descended to her own apartment,
where she announced that they were going to Mademaison to pass the week.
Several hours later, they set out, Bonaparte in one carriage, and Josephine with Madame de Remusat in another.
Josephine seemed sad and preoccupied and had left.
to say.
Finally, she remarked,
I am going to tell you a great secret.
This morning, Bonaparte informed me
that he had sent Coulin-Court to the frontier
to seize the Duc D'Angain.
They are going to bring him here.
Ah, my God, madame, cried the lady.
What do they intend to do?
Why, I think they mean to put him on trial.
Josephine went on to say
that she had done everything she could
to obtain an assurance from the first consul
that the prince should not be condemned,
but she was afraid that Bonaparte's mind was made up
and that the Duke must die.
Before dinner, the first consul played chess
and appeared as calm and serene as usual.
After the dinner, at which nothing important transpired,
he retired to his cabinet to work with the police.
The two following days passed quietly and sadly.
Convinced that the fate of the prince was decided,
Josephine made no further efforts
to turn her husband from his purpose.
Tuesday morning, Josephine said,
It is all hopeless.
The Duke Dengen arrives this evening.
He will be taken to Vincent and tried tonight.
Murat is in full charge.
He is odious in this matter.
It is he who is urging Bonaparte on.
Bonaparte has forbidden me to say anything more to him on the subject.
In the afternoon, the first consul again played chess
and insisted on having the little Napoleon at dinner.
He had the baby placed in the middle of the day.
table, and was much amused to see him upset everything around him.
After dinner, Bonaparte seated himself on the floor and played with the child.
Noticing the pallor of Madame de Riemuzza, he asked why she had forgotten to put on her rouge,
and added with a laugh, that would never happen to you, Josefine.
When they came downstairs at eight o'clock the next morning, Savarie was already in the salon.
Josephine said, well, is it done?
Yes, madame, he replied.
He died this morning, and I must admit, with fine courage.
He then gave the details which are now well known.
By many persons, the execution of the Duke Dongkin is considered the greatest plot on the fame of Napoleon.
Tel-Iran, with his usual cynicism said,
It is worse than a crime, it is a blunder.
Naturally, there was a cry of indignation from the royalists everywhere.
It was perfectly legitimate for them.
to attempt the life of the plebeian usurper,
but he must not shed a drop
of the blue blood of the bourbons.
Napoleon himself never offered any excuses
for his action on this occasion.
Upon the threshold of eternity
in his last testament at St. Helena,
he wrote with his own hand,
I had the Duke Dengen arrested and tried
because it was necessary for the security,
the interest, and the honor of the French people,
at a time when the Comte d'Artois,
by his own admission,
was maintaining 60 assassins at Paris.
Under the same circumstances, I would again do the same.
End of chapters 13 and 14.
Chapters 15 and 16 of Napoleon and Josephine, the rise of the empire by Walter Gere.
This Lieberwog's recording is in the public domain.
15. 1804.
Empress of the French
There is no city in the world where things are forgotten so quickly as in
Paris, and the impression made by the death of the Duke Tonguein soon passed away.
Even with the royalists the event caused more sorrow than indignation.
The First Council decided to appear in public as usual, and soon went with his wife to the
opera where he was greeted with a customary applause.
A week after the execution, the Senate in an address formally called on Bonaparte to guarantee
the future by rendering his work as immortal as his glory.
In the Tribune on the 28th of April, a member suggested a hereditary empire, and five days later
the proposition was adopted by the vote of all the members except Gernot.
The Senate disputed the initiative of the Tribune in this matter, because six weeks before,
Foucher had made an appeal to that body to establish hereditary power in the person of Bonaparte
as the surest means of preserving the benefits of the revolution.
At the session of the 18th of May, the Senate adopted a very general.
a decree worded as follows. The French people decree the heredity of the imperial dignity in the
descent, direct, natural, legitimate, and adopted of Napoleon Bonaparte, and in the dissent,
direct, natural, and legitimate of Joseph Bonaparte and of Louis Bonaparte. Then the Senate
adjourned and proceeded in a body to Saint-Clu to hail the new sovereign Napoleon
in uniform received them in the magnificent gallery of Apollo, where four and a half of
half years before, in the early hours of a gloomy November morning he had taken his oath as
counsel. Now it is a day of splendid May sunshine, and a Josephine radiant with joys by the
side of her husband, whose triumph she modestly shares. In the name of the Senate, Cambasseres
pronounces a solemn discourse, which ends with the expression of the hope that the decree shall
immediately be executed, and Napoleon instantly proclaimed as emperor of the French. There is
enthusiastic applause in the gallery which is echoed throughout the chateau and in the courts and gardens.
The cry of vive l'empereur, to be heard later on so many fields of battle for the first time
splits the air. Napoleon arrived at the goal of his ambition, conceals his pride under an air
of outward calm. He is so much at ease in his new role of monarch that one would imagine he was
born to the purple. It is next the turn of the new empress to receive the homage of the Senate.
Cambeseres in his most flowery manner conveys to Josephine the expression of the respect and gratitude of the French people
for her never-failing kindness and sympathy in cases of misfortune, the living remembrance of which would teach the world that,
to dry the tears, is the surest way to rain over the hearts. Behold, therefore, the modest and gracious Creole elevated to the rank of sovereign.
In the chorus of acclamations which echoed from every part of France, there was scarcely
a discordant note. The people ratified the Napoleonic dynasty by the almost unanimous vote of
over three and a half millions in the affirmative against 2,500 in the negative, a majority
larger than that obtained for the consulate. If supreme power is ever to be based upon the
foundation of a nation's will, no ruler in history ever had a clearer title to his throne than
Napoleon Bonaparte. In the midst of these scenes of joy, the only persons who appear dissatisfied are
the members of the new imperial family, who ought to be the most delighted and the most astonished
at their grandeur. Nothing seems sufficiently splendid to meet their extravagant desires.
When we think of the modest mansion of their father at Ayaccio, it is impossible to suppress a smile
at the pretensions of these new princes and princesses of the blood. Of the four brothers of Napoleon,
two are absent and in disgrace. Lucien for his marriage with Madame Jubertou,
Jerome for having wedded Miss Patterson.
His mother has espoused the cause of Lucien and followed her son into exile at Rome.
Joseph and Louis are disappointed because their children, instead of themselves, are designated in the line of succession.
Elisa and Caroline are full of chagrin because they are placed in the official scale below their sister-in-law, the Empress,
and they are plunged in despair because they do not yet receive the title of Princess, like the wives of Joseph and Louis.
they certainly must have expected that the wife of the emperor would receive an exalted rank but they did not imagine that julie and ortense who were not of the blood could bear titles which they themselves did not have
after the reception of the senate at st clu at which eliza and caroline were present the emperor asked them to remain for dinner as they were about to go to the table duroc announced the titles which should be given to each one and in particular to the wives of the princes
Madame Bacchoki and Murat appeared astounded at the difference between themselves and their sisters-in-law.
Madame Murat especially found it difficult to conceal her chagrin.
About six o'clock, the Emperor appeared and began without any appearance of embarrassment
to salute each one with his new title.
The Empress showed her usual amiability.
Louis appeared satisfied.
Madame Joseph resigned to what was expected of her.
Madame Louis equally submissive.
Eugene de Boerner, simple and natural, with an air free from all signs of ambition or disappointment.
It was not the same with the new Marshal Murat, but fear of his brother-in-law forced him to self-restraint,
and he displayed a thoughtful reticence.
As for Madame Murat, she was in despair, and had so little self-control that when she heard
the Emperor on several occasions during the dinner addressed the Princess Louis, she could not repress her tears.
She drank in succession several large glasses of water in the endeavor to recover her composure,
but the tears continued to fall.
Her sister, Madame Batchoki, older and more mistress of herself, did not cry,
but she was brusque and cutting in her manner and treated the dame du Palais with marked hauteur.
After a while the emperor became annoyed and increased the discomfiture of his sisters
by teasing them with indirect banter.
On this occasion there were too many people present for the matter to go,
further, but the following day at the family dinner, Madame Murat broke out in tears and complaints.
Napoleon lost his temper and replied very severely.
Caroline, who could endure no more, fell on the floor in a dead faint.
This had an immediate effect on Napoleon, who calmed down and agreed to do what they wanted.
The next day, the official paper inserted the following note.
To the French princes and princesses is given the title of Imperial Highness.
The sisters of the emperor bear the same title.
In the midst of all these family desegreements,
Josephine maintained her usual amiable serenity.
The conduct of his brothers and sisters
was in such contrast with that of his wife and her children
that Napoleon could not help being impressed with the difference.
Except for money from time to time to pay her debts,
Josephine asked nothing.
For the rest, she accepted whatever it pleased her husband to give her,
but without any appearance of desiring it and without any pretension that it was due her.
If he gave to others she approved and never displayed any envy.
Her conduct, whether calculated or not, was so adroit that everyone was struck by her
disinterestedness and her husband most of all.
With respect to her children, Josephine showed exactly the same spirit.
As Napoleon himself stated later, she never asked anything for Erejean,
never even thanked him for what he did for her son, and never showed any particular appreciation of his favors.
At the debut of the empire, Napoleon did nothing for Eugène, who found himself relegated by his duties and his rank,
to the waiting room the most distant from the emperor's apartment.
Eugène seemed to consider this entirely natural and made no complaint.
When Napoleon offered him through Josephine the office of Grand Chamberlain, Eugène modestly declined,
saying an excuse that this employment suited neither his tastes nor his character,
his vocation being entirely military.
No reply could have better please the Emperor,
who at once increased his allowance from 30,000 to 150,000 francs,
and appointed him Colonel General of the Chasseur-A-Cheval,
which made him a grand officer of the Empire.
The new Empire opened brilliantly,
and no one seemed to give a thought to the Republic
of which almost the only vestige left was the Gold Coast,
that continued for several years to bear the anomalous inscription,
Republic Frenches, Napoleon Emperor.
The first public appearance of the new sovereigns on a formal occasion
was at the fate of the 14th of July,
anniversary of the fall of the Bastille,
which this year was to be the occasion of the presentation of the crosses of the Legion
of Honor.
For the first time they traversed in a carriage the Grand Alley of the Tullery Gardens
and proceeded with great pop to the Hotel des Evalide.
the ceremony took place in the church which during the revolution had been made a temple of mars and was now again consecrated for religious uses after the mass and a discourse by the grand chancellor of the order the emperor pronounced the oath and each of the members cried je le
napoleon then called to him cardinal caprara who had negotiated the concordat and who was soon to be of great service in deciding the pope to come to paris for the coronation detaching from his neck the court
of the Legion. The Emperor presented it to the venerable prelate.
On this occasion, the Empress had a great personal triumph.
She wore a robe of pink tulle covered with silver stars, with a very decoulté corsage,
as was then the fashion, although the ceremony took place in full daylight.
Clusters of diamonds crowned her head. Radiant with happiness she never appeared to
greater advantage. Four days later, the Emperor left Saint-Lieu for Boulogne.
on a general tour of inspection of the channel ports from Calais to Ostande.
He left Josephine occupied with the preparation of her toilette for the visit,
which she was soon to make with him to the banks of the Rhine.
He was to meet her the 1st of September at Ex la Chappelle,
where the Empress was to precede him by several weeks
for the purpose of taking the waters.
As was his custom, before leaving St. Clue,
Napoleon dictated in the minutest details the itinerary of the journey of the Empress.
everything was worked out with the same precision that he would have given to the orders for an
army corps to arrive at a certain hour on the field of battle. He also dictated the replies
that Josephine was to make to the addresses of welcome that she would receive at the different
cities through which she passed. Every day before her departure, Josephine could be seen a large
page of manuscript in her hand, trying to commit these discourses to memory as a schoolgirl
learns her lesson. Fortunately, her replies were brief and she soon,
knew them by heart.
Josephine's life at X was very monotonous.
After the morning toilette,
the empress went to the thermal establishment for a bath.
An hour of rest followed,
and then she dressed for breakfast.
In the afternoon, she usually went out for a drive.
Upon her return, she again changed her robe for dinner.
In the evening, unless she went to the theatre,
she retired at an early hour.
It will be interesting here
to read one of the letters written at this time
by Napoleon to Josephine, if only for the purpose of comparing it with the ardent effusions he sent her during the campaign of Italy.
To the Empress at Ex La Chappelle, Calais, 6 August, 1804.
My ami, I am at Calais since midnight, but expect to leave for Dancark this evening.
I am satisfied with my inspection and in quite good health.
I trust that the waters will do you as much good as the side of the camp and the sea has done me.
Eugene has left for Blois.
Ortense is well.
Louis is at Blombier.
I long to see you.
You are ever necessary to my happiness.
A thousand best wishes.
Napoleon.
After a visit of nine days at X
when he arrived on the second of September,
Napoleon left with Josephine for Collegne.
From there they traveled separately to Mayans,
which they reached on the 20th of September.
At Mayas, the sovereigns received,
the warmest of welcomes. The houses and public buildings were all illuminated in their honor.
The Emperor found himself surrounded by a regular court of German princes. Performances were given
by the Second Company of the Teatro Franca which had been summoned from Paris.
On the 12th of October, the Emperor and Empress were once more back at Saint-Clu.
This visit to the banks of the Rhine made a great impression on France and indeed on all Europe.
No theatrical manager ever had a greater talent than Napoleon for what may be called the art of the Misencine.
The stage was now set for the coronation, and the curtain was about to rise on one of the grandest spectacles the world has ever seen.
16. 1804 to 1805 The Coronation
During his absence from Paris, the Emperor had not lost sight of his plans for the coronation, and had sent him
uncle Cardinal Fesh to Rome as a special ambassador. He was to arrange with the Pope to come to Paris
to crown the new Chalemang in his capital. If the Holy Father consented, Fesh had full powers to
arrange with him all the details of the ceremony. After much hesitation the Pope finally agreed
to yield to the wishes of the Emperor and go to Paris. This unheard-of act of condescension
filled the new sovereign with delight. The political consequences to him were
enormous. On the one hand, it assured his standing with a large Catholic population of France,
and on the other, it legitimized his title in the eyes of the other sovereigns of Europe,
and put an end to the claims of the Bourbons. The visit of the Pope to Paris was an event
so extraordinary as to seem to everyone almost incredible. When the report was first spread
abroad, Madame Letitia, who was now called Madame Mare, was simply astounded at the thought that the
Pope,
Il Santissimo Padre, should condescend to make the journey to Paris to crown her
bambino Napoleone, as Emperor of the French.
The good woman could hardly realize it.
No one had followed the negotiations with more interest than Josephine.
For her the important question was, would she be crowned with the Emperor?
This, she thought, would mean an assured future, with no more worry over the perpetually
recurring menace of divorce which empoisoned her entire existence.
As she had anticipated, the Bonaparts took this occasion to renew their efforts to persuade Napoleon to repudiate his wife, and this time they might have gained their end if they had used more tact.
But they went too far in their attacks on Josephine, and as usual only succeeded in arousing their brother's wrath.
In this crisis, Josephine displayed so much grief and at the same time so much submission to his wishes that Napoleon could not bring himself.
to the point of repudiating her.
He took Josephine in his arms
and told her effusively that he would never
have the strength to part with her,
even though public policy demanded it.
Then he promised her that she should be
crowned with him, and receive at
his side from the hands of the Pope
the divine consecration.
Monsieur Tierre, in relating
this incident, adds that he took it from
the manuscript of the unpublished memoirs
of a reliable person attached to the
imperial family, who was an eyewitness
of the scene.
The preparations for the coronation were on a grand scale,
and nothing was left undone to make the spectacle imposing and memorable.
The costumes were designed by the great painters David and Isabe.
The crown of the emperor modelled upon that of Chalemang was made by Fonsier,
the leading jeweller of Paris, and was a wonderful work of art.
It can still be seen in the Gallery of Apollo at the Louvre.
In order to have the ceremony as perfect as possible,
there were several dress rehearsals held at Notre Dame.
David arranged the groups and the scenes were repeated until each one knew his role perfectly.
The painter profited by these rehearsals to make the sketches for his great painting of the coronation,
afterwards ordered by the emperor which now hangs in the Louvre.
When someone said later to David that in his painting he had made Josephine absurdly young,
he replied,
Go and tell her so.
For the coronation, two dates had been considered.
First, the 14th of July, anniversary of the fall of the Bastille, and the second, the 9th November,
the day of the 18 Brumier when Bonaparte overthrew the directory. But both of these dates were
manifestly inappropriate, and the delay of the Pope in reaching a decision finally caused the day
to be set for the first week in December. On the second day of November, the Pope, Pius I.
the seventh, then 62 years of age,
left Rome for his long and tiresome journey to Paris.
At the same time, Napoleon was hurrying
the work on the Chateau of Fontainebleau
so that it should be ready to receive the Holy Father
on his arrival.
As if, by magic, in less than three weeks,
the palace was redecorated and refurnished
with all its former splendor.
The Pope was expected to arrive on Sunday
the 25th of November.
To avoid all ceremony, Napoleon dressed in hunting
costume left the palace an hour before noon, and directed his horse to the part of the forest
by which the Pope was to arrive. As soon as his carriage stopped on meeting the Emperor,
the Pope descended, and Napoleon dismounted. The two illustrious sovereigns embraced cordially
and then entered the Emperor's carriage which had been sent to meet them. At the door of the
palace, the Empress and the Grand Dignitaries of the Court were gathered to meet the Supreme
Pontiff, dressed in a long white sultan, which fell around
him like the drapery of an antique statue, with his face devoid of color, the Pope had a most
ethereal air. His handsome and noble countenance, his sweet expression, his soft but resonant voice
produced a strong impression. The two sovereigns dined together, and the Pope retired at an early
hour to rest after the fatigues of so long a journey. The following day, Josephine managed to
have a confidential interview with the Pope, during which she confided to him the fact that
she and Napoleon were only united by a civil bond. She prayed him to use all his influence with
the Emperor to have him put an end to this situation which was filling her heart with remorse.
Rest in peace, my daughter, he said on retiring. That will be arranged. On Thursday the Pope
made his entry into Paris, where he was received with the same honors accorded the Emperor.
He was lodged at the Tuileries in the Pavilion de Flores, which had been prepared specially for his
reception. He arrived at the palace about eight o'clock in the evening in the same carriage with
the emperor. Josephine, who had left Fontainebleau in the morning, had reached Paris a few hours
earlier. All Paris was excited over the approach of the great day. The hotels were crowded
with strangers who had come from far and near to be present at the ceremony. All the shops were
working night and day to have the uniforms and the robes ready in time. The ladies were to wear
ball dresses with trains with a colorette of blonde lace called a chelisque, which fastened upon the two
shoulders and rising quite high behind the head, recalled the fashions of the time of Catherine
de medicis. The costumes of the men were also very rich. A week before the ceremony, the painter
Isabé received from the emperor in order to make seven sketches, representing the number of
principal scenes in the spectacle at the cathedral. To prepare seven such designs, each containing over a
hundred figures in the short time at his disposal was manifestly out of the question.
In this dilemma, Isabé conceived the ingenious idea of purchasing a hundred dolls and dressing
them to represent the various personages. These he placed in a plan in relief of the interior
of Notre Dame and took them to the emperor. Napoleon was much amused and also much pleased
at this solution of the problem, and the miniature stage with the puppets was used to instruct
the actors as to their roles in the spectacle.
The Pope kept his promise to Josephine,
and on the night before the coronation,
Cardinal Fesh, at an altar erected
in the Emperor's Cabinet, performed
the religious marriage of Napoleon and Josephine.
No witnesses were present,
but after the ceremony the Cardinal gave Josephine
a formal certificate of her marriage,
which she always carefully guarded.
At last, the Great Day arrived.
The 2nd of December dawned cold and fond,
but the bright sun soon dissipated the mists. At an early hour, the streets were crowded with
spectators, and windows along the route of the procession rented as high as 300 francs.
Before the departure for Notre Dame, the ladies of the palace were introduced to the
apartment of the Empress. Their costumes were very brilliant, but they paled before those
of the imperial family. Josephine, resplendent with diamonds, her hair dressed in the mode of Louis
did not appear over twenty-five.
She wore a robe and court mantle of silver brocade
embroidered with golden bees, the imperial emblem.
She had a headband of diamonds, a necklace,
earrings, and a girdle of very great value,
all of which she wore with her accustomed grace.
The Pope left the Tuileries at nine o'clock
in a carriage drawn by eight dapple-gray horses.
According to Roman usage,
he was preceded by one of his camarieri,
mounted upon a mule and bearing a large cross.
this unaccustomed sight greatly amused the parisians the emperor and empress started over an hour later their carriage which is still preserved in the museum of the grand triano at versailles was drawn by eight cream-colored horses covered with brilliant harnesses
it was decorated with allegorical paintings on a gold background and all the panels were of glass so that the sovereigns could be seen from every side they left the tuileries by way of the carouselry by way of the carouss
and followed the Rue Saint-Honore as the Rue de Rivoli was not then completed.
Marshal Murat at the head of twenty squadrons of cavalry led the way,
and eighteen six-horse carriages followed with the principal personages of the court.
The streets were guarded by a double line of infantry who kept back the crowds.
Arrived at the palace of the archbishop, Napoleon put on the coronation costume.
Over a narrow robe of white satin, he wore a heavy mantle of crimson velvet.
on his head he placed a crown of golden laurels on his neck the collar of the legion d'honneur in diamonds at his side a sword ornamented with the regent diamond
after the high mass the pope blessed the imperial ornaments and then returned them to the emperor the ring which he placed upon his finger the sword which he replaced in its sheath the mantle which was attached to his shoulders by the chamberlains
then the sceptre and the hand of justice which he gave to the arch treasurer and the arch chancellor the only ornament which remained to be handed to the emperor was the crown as the pope was about to proceed with this final act of the seraph
Napoleon took from his hands the emblem of supreme power and proudly placed himself upon his head.
It had been arranged that the train of the mantle of the Empress should be borne by the five imperial princesses.
Julie and Ortense, the wives of Joseph and Louis, and the three sisters of the emperor,
Elisa, Pauline, and Caroline.
It was not without violent protest that Napoleon's sisters accepted this servile role.
When the moment arrived for Josephine to take her part in the ceremony, she arose and advanced towards the steps of the altar where the emperor awaited her.
All the ladies of the palace arose at the same time, and the princesses who formed her service d'Henard proceeded to perform their duty.
The mantle of the empress of red velvet embroidered with golden bees and lined with ermine was very heavy,
and the role of the princesses was far from being merely honorary.
the three sisters entirely neglected their part and the empress was unable to move forward the quick eye of napoleon at once took in the situation and a few sharp words to his sisters quelled the mutiny
arrived before the altar josephine knelt joined her hands and gracily bowed her form napoleon then placed upon her head the small closed crown surmounted by a cross he even seemed to take a loving pleasure in carefully arranged
it upon her hair. Josephine had never been so happy, or seemed so charming as on this occasion.
Isabé, who had touched up her features with his painter's art, had removed the traces of time,
and she looked fifteen years younger than her real age. The head of Josephine in David's well-known
painting is a faithful representation of her appearance on this day. Mademoiselle Evrion
writes in her memoir, "'Never have I seen upon any countenance and accountenance and
expression of joy, of satisfaction, of happiness, which could be compared to that which animated
the face of the Empress. She was radiant. The crown placed upon her brow by the hands of her
August's spouse had assured her future, and seemed for all time to have ended the rumors
of divorce with which she had been so often tormented. After the ceremony, the procession
returned to the Tuileries by way of the boulevards, and the present Rue Royale, and entered the palace
from the gardens.
The day had been long and tiresome,
and Napoleon was glad to resume his modest uniform of colonel of the Chasseur de la Guard.
He died alone with Josephine,
whom he begged to retain the diadem which she wore so gracefully,
and which became her so well.
He was in excellent humor,
and paid his wife a thousand compliments,
saying that she was the most charming empress in the world.
The coronation was followed by a series of fate.
On the 5th of December,
the emperor distributed to the army the imperial eagles.
The ceremony took place on the Chant-Mass
in the presence of the Empress and all the high dignitaries of the empire.
Unfortunately, the weather was terrible.
An icy rain fell in torrents and the field was a sea of mud.
Notwithstanding the storm,
the streets along the route of the procession were crowded with spectators.
In the evening there was a grand banquet served in the Gallery de Jan at the Tuileries.
The table of the sovereigns was placed on a magnificent dais.
The Empress was seated in the center with the Emperor at her right and the Pope at her left.
Of all the entertainments, the finest was that given by the marshals at the Opera on the 7th of January 1805.
The hall was transformed into a magnificent ballroom by a floor built over the parquet on a level with the stage.
The marshals arrived at 8 o'clock, the Empress at 10, and the Emperor,
an hour later. After a concert, the ball was opened by Prince Louis, Marshal Murat,
Eugene de Boernet, and Marshal Bertie, who dance with the four imperial princesses.
The Emperor twice made the tour of the room and then retired at an early hour.
The last of the fact was the baptism on the 24th of March at St. Clu of Napoleon Louis,
the second son of Louis and Ortense. The ceremony was performed by the Pope himself
a week before his departure for Rome.
Josephine had been the godmother of the older boy,
but on this occasion, Madame Mère was chosen to fill the role.
Josephine was entirely satisfied,
as this baptism seemed to seal the reconciliation
between the two families and assure her future,
as well as that of her grandson.
From this date up to the time of the divorce,
there were no more solemn baptisms.
Napoleon and Josephine indeed promised
to give their names to many children,
but the emperor always put off the ceremony, which finally took place at Fontainebleau in November 1810.
But on this occasion there was another Marine, and the numerous Josephine were presented at the font by a new empress, who was called Marie-Louise.
End of chapters 15 and 16.
Chapter 17 and 18 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gierre.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
17. 1804 to 1809. Daily life of the Empress
Abandoning for a moment the chronological sequence of events
let us endeavor to depict Josephine's mode of life during the time that her career was linked
with the Empire. From the 18th of May, 1804, when she was saluted as Empress at Saint-Clu,
to the 15th of December, 1809, when her marriage was dissolved.
at the Tuileries. To Friedrich Masson of the Academy
Francaise, we owe many interesting details of the existence of the Empress at this time.
During these five years and a half, Josephine passed less than twelve months in all at the
Tuileries. She lived thirteen months at St. Clu, eight at Malmeson, and four at Fontainebleau.
She went twice to Plombier and once to Ex la Chappelle for the baths. She lived six months at
Strasbourg and four at Mayence. She visited John'son. She visited John'son.
Germany, Italy, and Belgium, the borders of the Rhine, and all of the center and south of France.
To follow her in her journeys to trace her itinerary would be both tedious and unprofitable.
Wherever she lived, her surroundings were practically the same, and the details of her daily life never varied.
In the endeavor to emancipate himself from a part of the slavery to which the sovereigns of France had always submitted,
Napoleon divided his existence into two parts.
one, the exterior, which belonged to the public,
the other, the interior, which was intimate and private.
The first had for its theatre the state apartments,
the second was passed in the private rooms.
But for the Empress, this division was more apparent than real.
The two lives were constantly overlapping.
Now that the Tuileries have been destroyed for 50 years,
it is difficult to give any clear idea of the apartments occupied by Josephine,
and especially so as she was continually changing the arrangement of the rooms.
The Apartment d'Hour of the Empress was entered from the carousel at the corner of the Pavilion de Flore.
The windows in the salons were so high from the floor that a person, when seated, could not see out.
But Napoleon would allow no alterations made as it would have injured the appearance of the façade of the palace.
On the other side, the private rooms which based on the gardens, were only separated from the public sidewalk,
by Loh Terrace, and it was possible for any passer-by to see into the windows.
Again, the Emperor refused to have any change made which would have deprived the Parisians
of the privilege of passing through the gardens.
It was not until the days of the People's King, Louis-Philippe, that the windows were cut down
and a part of the gardens was reserved.
The private apartment of Josephine comprised only a library, a bedroom, a dressing-room,
and bathroom.
All these rooms on the grounds on the grounds.
ground floor faced on the gardens, and were the same that Josephine and Ortense had occupied
when they first came to the Tuileries. The personal suite of the emperor on the first floor
was reached by several private staircases, one of which ascended from Josephine's bedchamber.
These stairways were so narrow that two persons could not pass. The rooms on the gardens were
separated from those on the court by a long dark corridor. Above a part of Josephine's suite
there was a mazzanine floor or entre sol in which were located her wardrobes.
The decorations of her apartment made at the beginning of the consulate had never pleased Josephine,
who wished above all to have a handsome bedroom. Accordingly, when she was absent in Germany
in 1806, her rooms were entirely redecorated and refurnished by Fontaine in a truly
imperial style at a cost of 100,000 francs. But Josephine considered the work frightful, and a
year later gave orders to have it all done over to suit her own taste.
In the budget of 18008, the Emperor allowed a credit of 60,000 francs for this work,
but the final cost exceeded a quarter of a million.
This time, the architects, discouraged by so many contradictory orders,
decided to follow their own ideas.
When Josephine returned from Bayonne, the work was all finished.
She was furious because her orders had been disregarded.
The decorations were heavy and outlawed.
of style. The furniture was
too plain and too cheap.
She went to live at the Elysee,
and with her numerous absences from Paris,
never again occupied the Tuileries for more than three months
up to the day of her divorce.
At the time of his second marriage, therefore,
Napoleon did not think it necessary
to make any great alterations for Marie-Louise
in the rooms which Josephine had hardly used.
The arrangement of Josephine's rooms at Saint-Clu
was very similar to that at the Tuileries,
except that they were located on the first floor,
and were decorated in a more modern and more feminine style.
Napoleon, who liked everything severe but handsome,
was not pleased with the furniture,
which he did not consider in accord with the majesty of his person and his reign.
He said that Josephine's apartment was fit only for
a fee entretenue.
Most of the visitors did not agree with this opinion.
They considered the rooms in good taste
and much pleasanter than those in the tuileries.
On the walls were hung many fine paintings taken from the Musee Napoleon.
In the salon of the Empress there was a handsome portrait of Madame Mère by Gerard.
But what attracted the most attention was a large mirror in one piece over the mantle.
This was mounted on a back of solid silver, which disappeared when a spring was pressed
and furnished a fine perspective of the park with the fountains, the vases, and statues.
The chamber of Josephine was particularly attractive, with the bed.
in the form of a small boat, of mahogany ornamented with gilded bronze, and mirrors on all sides.
The bathroom was entirely in marble, with painted antique friezes.
At Saint-Clu, the etiquette was somewhat relaxed in the life, more private.
It was possible to walk in the restricted gardens, and to make extended excursions in
carriages, through the park and in the neighborhood, particularly to Malmaison.
To give an idea of the tastes and occupations of Josephine, we will trace
briefly the routine of one day. If the emperor had passed the night in her apartment, he rose at
eight o'clock and at Paris ascended or at St. Clue descended to his own rooms. Only at St. Clue there
was no private staircase, and he was forced to pass through a long corridor to reach the public stairway.
Then the Empress's women entered and drew the curtains. For her first repast, Josephine drank
in bed a cup of infusion or a lemonade. She always wore a nightcap of percale or embroidered. She always wore a nightcap
of percale or embroidered muslin
trimmed with lace.
Although she had no end of night dresses,
she usually wore a chemise over which at night
she put on a camisole.
The door was then opened for the entrance
of her favorite pug dog,
Fortunee, an ugly mongrel cur.
This was a successor to the dog
of the same name under whose collar
she concealed her letters at the calm in
1794. That one had
been killed at Montobello.
Never later than nine o'clock,
Josephine enters her dressing room,
where she always passes at least three hours of her day,
for she never neglects the mysterious rights of her toilette.
Under the empire, Josephine had no less than twelve attendants
to care for her person and her wardrobe,
but the two premier femme were only there for the etiquette
and had few functions to perform beyond drawing their salary of six thousand francs.
The four femme de chambre were pretty young girls
who after the end of eighteen hundred five were called Dame d'Anonnes.
Two of them were in service every other way,
week, and their duty was to announce to the Empress the persons who called upon her.
Their salary was three thousand francs a year.
The real attendance of Josephine were the Guard de Tartour, Madame Malé, and the four
femme de garre d'ardrobe, of whom one was Mademoiselle Avrion, who in her memoir calls
herself, Prémyrame de Chambre de L'Iperatrice.
These women were the ones who entered into the familiarity of the Empress, and were
most in her confidence. To them, Josephine and entrusted not.
not only her jewels and her robes, but also her most secret thoughts.
To them she made presents of five hundred or a thousand francs at a time,
gave them dots when they were married and a pension when they retired.
While guarding her rank,
Josephine always treated these attendants with the greatest kindness and politeness,
and naturally she was adored by them.
For Josephine the rights of her toilette were long and complicated.
She always took a bath every day,
which was rather unusual at that time.
But the most important act was to fere
sa tait, to efface the ravages of time.
In those days it was customary for all society women
to employ rouge, but Josephine carried it to excess.
Not content with putting a little on her cheeks,
she covered her entire face with powder and rouge.
The eye of Napoleon was so accustomed to this excess of color
that he thought any woman who did not show it must be ill.
go on and put on some rouge, madame, he said to one,
you look like a corpse.
On the other hand, Napoleon could not endure the scent of any perfume
except a little lavender water or o de colloing.
The intricate details of her toilette completed,
Josefine dresses for the morning.
From her 500 chemises, she selects one of muslin, per kale or Batiste,
embroidered at the bottom and trimmed at the neck in sleeves with Maline or Valenciennes.
the plainest ones cost a hundred francs, and some of them three times that amount.
As Josephine changes all her linen three times a day, the number of the garments is not so extraordinary.
She almost always wears white silk stockings, costing from twenty to seventy francs a pair.
No garters as the new silk stockings stay in place.
In the morning she puts on house shoes of taftas or satin, at eight francs the pair, of which she orders over five hundred
a year. She usually wears a light corset of lined per kale trimmed with Valenciennes, for which
she pays about 40 francs. After the corset, she puts on a flimsy petticoat of pear kale trimmed
with her favorite lace. That is all, absolutely all. Josephine has in his garterobe
that du pantalos in soi of color cher for mounte a cheval. When Josephine has put on a
peignoir, her cooferer, Herbeau, is introduced. He is introduced. He is a little. He is a
an important personage in embroidered costume with a sword by his side and receives in salary and gifts eight thousand francs a year but herbeau is only employed on ordinary occasions for days of ceremony there is dupland who is paid twelve thousand francs and later in the time of marie louise receives the magnificent salary of forty two thousand francs
it is impossible to attempt to describe the coiffure employed by josephine for they varied from day to day her hair was of a decidedly auburn shade and in colour and thickness remained the same to the end of her life
after these first details which had consumed much time there was a regular council of war as to the robe the hat and the wrap to be selected in summer her dresses were of muslin bettised her pair kale and she had over two hundred to select from in winter she had over two hundred to select from in winter she was a hat and the wrap to be selected from in winter she was a hat and she was a man
she wore cloth or velvet gowns, of which she had no less than six or seven hundred in her wardrobe.
To wear with these costumes there were endless wraps of every possible material,
mostly trimmed with the rarest and most expensive furs.
Josephine always wore a hat in the morning, and frequently also in the evening.
Her choice was limited to 250, all different in form, color, and trimming.
Twice a year she went carefully through her wardrobe and gave away a large,
part of her collection. Most of the articles, some of which she had never used, were presented
to her femme de chambre. But even Madame Mare and the queens of Naples and Westphalia did not
disdain to accept such gifts. In six years, Josefine spent for her wardrobe the enormous sum
of a million and a half, and this did not include accounts not settled or costumes for ceremonies
like the coronation, for which the emperor made her a special allowance. In addition, during the
same period, she spent over 5 million francs for jewelry. When Napoleon after her divorce paid
up all her debts, her total expenditures for the six years reached the enormous total of
6,647,580 francs, or an average of more than a million francs a year. When we consider
that the Empress had the use of the finest crown jewels in the world valued at over five
millions, it is difficult to understand why she made all these purchases for her own private
collection. Her motive does not seem to have been to accumulate a reserve for use in case of
necessity, but rather a real mania for spending money. Her collection which she left to Artans
was appraised after her death at over four million francs, which was probably a third
less than the actual value. We have at first hand the story of the scene which preceded the
first payment of her debts in 1806. Josephine came to the table with tears in her eyes.
Napoleon leaned over and whispered to her.
Well, madame, you are in debt.
No reply except a sob.
You owe a million.
No, sire.
I swear that I only owe six hundred thousand.
Only that, you say.
Does that seem to you only a baguettelle?
He adds a few words of reproach, and she begins to sob louder than ever.
Then he whispers again.
Come, Josephine.
Come, my little one, do not cross.
compose yourself, and the debts are paid.
After she was dressed, Josephine received her physician.
She had a constitution of iron and was rarely ill,
but she was a malad imaginaire and was always taking medicine.
Corvizard, the chief physician of the emperor,
generally succeeded in curing her by a prescription made up of bread pills.
At eleven o'clock precisely, for she was punctuality personified,
Josephine entered the Salon Joan,
where were introduced the ladies
she had invited for de jone.
The menu, which was usually prepared
for ten persons, comprised a soup,
two re-levy, six entré,
two roast, six entreme,
and six dishes of dessert.
A bottle of bone and two bottles of fine
bourgoying were served.
Coffee was taken at the table,
and a half-bottle of liquor was provided.
Josephine, who ate but little,
did the honors with charming courtesy,
drawing out her guest to tell her all the latest gossip of the city and the court,
which the emperor was always interested in hearing repeated.
Napoleon usually took a hasty breakfast on a little table in his cabinet,
but sometimes he came down and joined his wife's party.
After breakfast, Josephine returned to the salon.
To walk in the gardens was impossible,
and the only exercise she took at Paris was an occasional game of billiards.
She rarely read anything, and never called upon her ladies to read for her.
but she was fond of conversation and there was always someone with whom to talk at five o'clock josephine went to her rooms to change her toilette for dinner which was served at the early hour of six o'clock
she changed completely and selected an evening gown which was always very decoultte in the evening she always wore a great many jewels her toilette finished josephine waits for the prefe du palais to announce that the emperor is ready to go to dinner
sometimes absorbed in his work napoleon forgets that he has not dined and she waits one hour two occasionally three or four she is never impatient and never disturbs napoleon at his work she passes the time in conversation with her ladies
when the emperor is ready she goes to the room where the dinner is served sometimes in her apartment and sometimes in that of napoleon on the floor above at paris they usually dined alone except sundays when there was a family party
after dinner napoleon always went to josephine's salon where she herself served the coffee unless they were going out to the theatre or there was a ball concert or spectacle at the chateau which happened about twice a week the emperor remained for a short time and talked with any dignitaries who had called
he then returned to his cabinet and josephine passed the evening in conversation or in a game of back cam and whist both of which games she played remarkably well quite often the emperor after he had retired for the
the night sent for her to read to him, as he loved the sound of her voice. As soon as he was asleep,
she returned to her salon and resumed her game. At midnight all visitors departed, and Josephine
made her toilette for the night, which took nearly as long as that of the morning.
In this also she was elegant, said the Emperor. She was graceful even in going to bed.
Eighteen. Eighthundred five. Italy and Strasbourg.
On the 2nd of April 1805, Napoleon left Fontainebleau for Milan, where he was to be crowned as
King of Italy. He had not intended to take Josephine with him, but she pleaded so warmly that he
finally yielded. The first night was spent at Trois, and the following day the Emperor went
alone to Brienne to see the school where he had received his first education. He slept at
the chateau, and the following morning without any escort, he visited the old familiar scenes of his
boyhood. Following the usual route via Macon, the imperial party reached Lyon a week later.
In order not to fatigue the Empress, Napoleon had arranged to stop every night in some city
instead of traveling night and day as was his regular habit. The sovereigns usually stayed at the
Prefecture where they found the dinner ready to serve and the lodgings prepared by the servants
sent in advance. At Lyon, they descended at the palace of the archbishop, Cardinal Fesh, who had
recently been appointed to this sea.
the entire journey from fontainebleau had been a triumphal march the villagers had flocked from far and near to line the route and cheer their emperor with an enthusiasm which at that time was as sincere as it was spontaneous
it was three hours afternoon when the party entered leon and the entire populace of the second city of france had gathered to acclaim the emperor napoleon had done much to increase the prosperity of this large silk manufacturing town and he was extremely popular there
after a sojourn of five days they leapt for turin by way of monseignee the fine road over the alps constructed by napoleon was not yet completed and to cross the mountains chaise apporteur were primed
provided for the women and mules for the men. The Pope who had left Fontainebleau two days
after the Emperor was still at Turin where he had stopped for a short rest on his way to Rome.
As he occupied the palace, the Emperor deferred for several days his entry into the capital
and stopped at an old villa of the King of Sardinia a few miles from the city. Before proceeding
to Milan, the party turned aside to visit Alessandria. Here, the 5th of May, the Emperor held
a grand review on the field where five years
years before he had gained the great victory of Marengo.
He had brought from Paris and wore again on this occasion the old and faded uniform,
the shapeless hat and the heavy saber which recalled so many glorious memories.
The maneuvers were directed by Eugène under the orders of the emperor,
and Napoleon expressed to Josephine his satisfaction with the manner in which her son
had performed his task.
On the following day, Napoleon saw Jerome for the first time since his brother's marriage.
jerome had arrived at lisbon with his wife during the month of april he was allowed to land but under orders from the emperor she was forced to re-embark for england jerome was summoned to meet the emperor in italy and travelled there post haste
after a decisive interview with napoleon he basely agreed to abandon his wife and her unborn child and was again restored to favor on the eighth of may the emperor entered milan where his welcome was not so spontaneous as in the cities of peatmont
napoleon was much disappointed at the lack of real enthusiasm and spoke of it to josephine his coronation as king of italy took place on the twenty sixth may in the cathedral the weather was perfect and the city was crowded with spectators
the ceremonies were similar to those at notre dame but on a much smaller scale cardinal caprara the archbishop of milan officiated napoleon himself placed upon his head the celebrated iron crown of the ancient kings of lombardy
at the same time using the traditional formula god gave it me woe to him who touches it josephine although she bore the title of queen of italy was not crowned as at paris and was present at the ceremony only as a spectator
after our return to the palace writes mademoiselle abryon i was occupied in the room of the empress when the emperor entered he was full of glee he laughed rubbed his hands together and said with great good humor well mademoiselle did you have a good view of the ceremony
did you hear what i said in placing the crown upon my head then he repeated in nearly the same tone he had used in the cathedral dieu me la donnie gar at who he touch
i replied that nothing had escaped me he was most amiable to me and i have often remarked that when nothing disturbed the emperor he was very familiar with the persons of his household he spoke to us with a sort of bon ami of freedom as if he were our equal
often he gave us a little tap or pulled our ears it was a favour which he did not accord to everybody and we could judge of the extent of his good-humour by the greater or less degree of pain than he caused us
very frequently he did the same to the empress when we were dressing her he gave her some taps playfully upon the shoulders it was useless for her to cry finidon finit don't finit don bonaparte he continued as long as the play amused him
on the tenth of june the emperor announced the appointment of eugen as viceroy of italy this elevation of her son which should have delighted josephine was only a cause of chagrin she shed tears at the thought of being separated from her child
one day when the emperor found her very sad he said you weep josephine it is not reasonable do you cry because you are going to be separated from your son if the absence of your children causes you
so much grief, judge what I myself must endure. The attachment to them which you show
makes me cruelly feel the misfortune of not having any. These words were far from assuaging
the grief of the empress. They raised once more the dreaded specter of divorce. Napoleon
certainly had no idea of increasing her grief, and Josephine could not let him see what an
interpretation she put upon his speech. The emperor, says Mademoiselle Avriol,
was one of the best husbands that I have ever known.
When the Empress was indisposed,
he passed by her side all the time
that he could take from his affairs.
He always came to her before retiring,
and very often when he awoke during the night he came himself,
or sent his Mamaluk to have news of her majesty.
He had for her the most tender regard,
and it is only true to say that she fully returned it.
Nothing that I say here would seem exaggerated
if others like myself could have witnessed the proofs of
affection which they both displayed, and I am certain that when political reasons force them to
separate, all the grief was not on one side. On the 10th of June, the emperor left Milan for a visit
to the Austrian frontier and the famous quadrilateral, the scene of so many of his brilliant
victories. Three days later, he held another grand review of his troops on the battlefield of Castellione.
Josephine took advantage of his absence to make with a few attendants the tour of the Italian
lakes. She was happy to be free for a few days from the Erxom etiquette which the presence of the
emperor always imposed. On her return to Milan, she dismissed most of her suite who were to leave
directly for Paris, and, with a few attendants proceeded to Bologna, where she rejoined the emperor.
In this city, the new sovereigns of Italy received a very warm greeting, which partially
atoned for the coldness of the Milanese. On the last day of June, the party arrived at Genoa,
well-named the superb, where they had a brilliant reception.
During the following week there was a succession of magnificent fate
to celebrate the incorporation of the ancient republic in the French Empire.
Later on the 6th of July, a special courier from Paris brought to the Emperor
the news of the formation of the Third Coalition, and at 10 o'clock that evening he set out for Turin,
where he arrived early on the following morning.
He then told the Empress of his intention to start the next day
post-haste for Paris, leaving her to follow him more leisurely.
Josephine begged to accompany him, and the Emperor finally consented on her promise not to have one of her headaches.
The party started in three carriages, one for the Emperor and Empress, another for the
grand officers of the household, and a third for the service, with a small escort of cavalry.
But after crossing Montcenaise, the Emperor traveled so rapidly that the other carriages and the
escort were left far behind. Napoleon and Josephine reached Fontainebleau about ten o'clock on the
night of the 11th of July, after an absence of exactly 100 days. Four days later, the emperor wrote
Eugen, I arrived 85 hours after my departure from Turin. Nevertheless, I lost three hours on Montsenie,
and I stopped constantly on account of the empress. One or two hours to breakfast and one or two
hours to dine made me lose eight or ten hours more.
The express trains via the Monsigny Tunnel now make the run of about 440 miles and 14 hours.
Allowing for the delays of which he speaks and the longer distance by road, the emperor
made the trip in about 70 hours at the rate of nearly seven miles an hour.
The arrival of the emperor at Fontainebleau was so unexpected that there was no one to
receive him except the concierge of the palace, an old servant named Galleux,
who had been his cook in Egypt.
Come, my good fellow, said the emperor.
You must resume your old calling.
You must get us some supper.
Fortunately, Gayu had in his larder some mutton chops and some eggs,
and Napoleon Aunt Josephine ate the simple repast with a good appetite.
A week later, the emperor reached Saint-Clu,
while the thunder of the canon of the Invalide announced his return to the capital.
The same evening, after a call on Madame Mare,
the sovereigns attended the opera.
where they received a warm welcome from the audience.
On the second day of August,
the Emperor left St. Clue for a month's tour of inspection of the Grand Army,
which was in cantonments along the Channel, prepared for a descent on England.
Here, ten days later, he received news that Admiral Villeneuve,
after an indecisive action with the English fleet of Ferol,
had set sail for caddies instead of breast as ordered.
Losing no time in vain regrets over the failure of his well-laid plans,
Napoleon called Daru to his headquarters at Pond de Brick at four o'clock in the morning,
and dictated at one sitting the plan of the Austrian campaign as far as Vienna.
In the meantime, Josephine had gone to her favorite watering-place, Plombier, to take the baths.
What a marvelous change in her fortunes since her earlier visit as Madame Bonaparte after the departure of her husband for Egypt.
Then, after her accident, she was almost alone, and Ortense was called in haste from St. Germain to nurse her mother,
Now, a company of infantry is sent to escort her majesty from Nancy to Plombier.
There are receptions by authorities civil and military, addresses and salutes,
triumphal arches at the gates of the cities, at Plombier, illuminations and fireworks.
She is accompanied by a prefect du Palais, an equie de honor, a dame donor, and two
dame du Palais, five femme de chambre, and a score or more of servants.
The charges for the post going and coming amount to nearly 40,000 francs, and the entire
expenses of the trip total over 134,000 francs. By way of diversion, Josephine had her portrait
painted by a very popular artist named Laurent whom she met at Plombier. For this small,
full-length portrait 18 inches by 15, she paid 6,000 francs. Except for a few excursions in the
neighborhood, this was the only occupation of her days.
At Bondea on her return, she was greeted by the prefect and all the authorities.
She survived the addresses, and without any escort continued her journey to Malmaison,
which she reached the last of August.
On the 24th September, between four and five o'clock in the morning, accompanied by Josephine,
Napoleon left Saint-Clu to put himself at the head of the Grand Army, which, exactly four
weeks before had begun its march from the Channel to the Rhine.
The journey of 315 miles to Strasbourg was made in 60 hours without any stop.
In accompanying the Emperor to Strasbourg and taking up her residence there,
Josephine's thought was, to escape from the Parisian addresses which bored her,
from the surveillance of her brothers-in-law,
and from the ennui of the Palace of Saint-Clu.
She was amused with the new entertainment.
In the ancient capital of Alsace,
Josephine lived in the Episcopal mansion at the foot of the cathedral.
It was a real palace completed in 1741 and entirely modern in its appointments.
Built by the first bishop of the House of Rowan, Armand Gaston, Cardinal and Grand Almoner,
it had been visited by Louis Xteenth in 1744 and had received Marie Antoinette on her arrival in France as Dauphine in 1770.
Sold early in the Revolution as national property, it had been bought
by the city and become the seat of the municipal administration. After the foundation of the
empire, the city had offered the palace to the state as one of the four imperial residences
to be established at the four principal points of the empire. From Boulogne, the emperor had
ordered Duroc to Saint-Fontaine de Strasbourg to put the mansion in order to receive him.
In less than two weeks, the architect cleared out the clerks and the archives, cleaned,
redecorated and refurnished the palace, all at a cost, not a cost, not a cost, and, and
much exceeding 200,000 francs. Furniture was collected from the neighboring cities and chateau.
Linen, glass, and silver were sent from Paris. Three days before the Emperor's arrival,
all was ready, even to the carriages and horses in the stables. The private suite of the Emperor,
facing on the court, comprised five rooms, while in the rear fronting on the terrace of the
ill, were the State Apartments, seven magnificent salons on the first floor. On the first
and second floors, there were fourteen small rooms at the disposal of the empress.
The quarters were not very commodious, but she was satisfied.
The emperor remained only four days at Strasbourg, and then proceeded to the headquarters of the army.
The life of Josephine after his departure was one continual round of dinners, balls, concerts, and spectacles.
In two months, Bocais, the prefect of the palace, paid out over 200,000 francs for the running expenses of the
As the success of the emperor became known, there were visits from all of the South German princes.
Josephine received the homage rendered her. She missed no ceremony. She remained until the end of all
the balls she gave and had a smile and a polite word for everyone. Not content with enjoying
all the pleasures of the city, Josephine indulged to the limit her mania for spending. Everything
that was offered she bought. Pictures, porcelain.
plants, living animals,
all of which went to swell her collection
at Mademason.
With the expenses of the palace,
she left over a million francs behind her in Strasbourg.
The story of the campaign of 1805
is told in the letters which Napoleon wrote almost daily.
From every bivouac, from every field of battle,
came one of his letters.
Not burning and delirious as nine years before,
but full of tenderness and loving thought.
To the Empress,
at Strasbourg, Etlingen, 2 October 1805.
I am still here and in good health. The grand manoeuvres have begun.
The army of Ertemberg in Baden is now united with mine.
I am in a good position, and I love thee. Napoleon.
Ludwitzburg, 4th October.
I leave tonight. There is nothing new. The Bavarians have united with my army.
I am well. In a few days I hope to have something.
interesting to tell you. Take care of yourself and believe me ever yours, Napoleon.
Ludwitzburg, 5th October. I leave at once to continue my march. You will be five or six
days without news of me. Do not be anxious, for that is due to the operations which are about to take
place. All goes well and as I expected. Adieu, my ami, I love and embrace thee. Napoleon.
On the 6th of October, the emperor surveyed the passage of the Danube at Donnerworth and passed the night at Nautlingen,
where on the following day he issued the first of the famous bulletins of the Grand Army.
He remained in this vicinity for four days, directing the passage of the river by the troops of Murat,
and the operations which followed.
He reached Augsburg on the night of the 10th and lodged with the former elector of Treve.
To the Empress at Strasbourg, Augsburg, 10 October.
i have been on the move for a week the campaign has opened favorably i am very well although it has reigned nearly every day events have moved rapidly i am sending to france four thousand prisoners and eight flags and have fourteen cannon taken from the enemy
adieu mon ami i embrace thee napoleon two days later the french army entered munich in triumph and the emperor continued his correspondence to the empress
at Strasbourg, Augsburg, 12 October.
The enemy is lost.
Everything presages the most fortunate campaign,
the shortest and most brilliant that I have ever made.
I leave in an hour for Burgos.
I am well, although the weather is frightful.
I change my clothes twice a day.
I love and embrace thee.
Napoleon.
On the eve of the capitulation of Ulm,
from his headquarters Napoleon sent the good news to Josephine.
to the Empress at Strasbourg
Ershingen, 18 October
I have accomplished my purpose
I have destroyed the Austrian army by simple marches
I have made 60,000 prisoners
taken 120 cannon, more than 90 flags
and more than 30 generals
I am going to move on the Russians
they are lost
I am content with my army
I have lost only 1,500 men
of whom two-thirds are but slightly wounded
I amyue, my Josephine, a thousand good wishes for everybody.
Napoleon.
Elshingen, 21 October.
I am quite well, my bon amy.
I am just starting for Augsburg.
Here, 33,000 men have laid down their arms.
I have from 60 to 70,000 prisoners, more than 90 flags and 200 cannon.
Never such a catastrophe in the annals of war.
Take care of thyself.
I am rather tired out.
The weather for three days has been fine.
Napoleon.
Augsburg.
23 October.
The last two nights have rested me, and I leave tomorrow for Munich.
I long to see thee, but do not count upon my sending for thee,
unless there is an armistice, or we go into winter quarters.
Adieu, mon ami.
A thousand kisses.
Napoleon.
Munich, 27 October.
I have your letter, and see with regret that you were over-anxious.
I have received reports which show all the tenderness you feel for me,
but you must have more strength and confidence.
My health is quite good.
You must not think of crossing the Rhine under two or three weeks.
You must be gay.
Enjoy yourself, and hope that we shall see each other before the end of the month, Brumere.
Adieu, my bon amy.
A thousand best wishes for Ortense, Eugène.
and the two napoleons napoleon
hague nirvels three november i am in the midst of a long march the weather is very cold
the earth covered with a foot of snow which is rather severe fortunately we are still in the
midst of the forest and there is plenty of wood i am quite well and would like to hear from you
and know that you are not anxious napoleon linds five november
the weather is fine we are twenty-eight leagues from vienna i long to see you my health is good i embrace you napoleon
the emperor of austria obliged to flee from his capital had taken refuge at brune where he joined the czar and his army on the thirteenth of november napoleon entered vienna and took up his residence at shunbrun to the empress at strasbourg vienna fifteen november
i have been here for two days and am a little fatigued i have not yet seen the city by day but have been through it at night nearly all my troops are across the danube in pursuit of the russians adieu my josephine i will send for you as soon as possible a thousand best wishes napoleon
the following day the emperor sent josephine the welcome message that he had made all the arrangements for her to proceed to munich
17 and 18
Chapter 19 of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gere.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
19. 1805 to 1806.
Marriage of Eugen.
The letter which Napoleon wrote to Josephine from Vienna
on the 16th of November 1805 is interesting
as showing how, in the midst of an arduous campaign,
he thought of the smallest details
of his wife's comfort and pleasure.
To the Empress at Strasbourg,
Vienna, 16 November, 1805.
I am writing, Monsieur Darville,
that you are to set out for Munich
stopping at Baden and Stuttgart.
At Stuttgart,
you will give the wedding present
to the Princess Pohl.
Fifteen or twenty thousand francs
will be enough to pay,
with the balance you can make presents at Munich
to the daughters of the elector of Bavaria.
Be kind, but receive all
the omages. They owe you everything, but you owe them only kindness. The electress of
Vortembourg is a daughter of the King of England. She is a good woman, and you should treat her
well, but without affection. I shall be very glad to see you the moment my affairs permit. I am
leaving for the front. The weather is frightful. It snows all the time. For the rest, all goes well.
Adieu, my bonnymy. Napoleon. As soon as she received the permission of the Emperor Jean,
Josephine made haste to start. At an early hour on the 28th of November with her suite, she left Strasbourg amidst the cheers of the populace and the thunders of the cannon of the fortress. On her arrival at Karsuah, the same evening she was received with salvos of artillery. The chateau was illuminated and the margrave was at the door to welcome her with his entire court. That evening there was a banquet followed by a ball. Two days later she left for Stuttgart, where she was received with her.
the same honors. On the 3rd December, she continued her journey to Munich. All along the route
she passed under triumphal arches and was welcomed with salutes. At Ulm, Marshal Ogerot, who was
in command, had arranged a parade, and a splendid fight for the evening, but the Empress
had overtaxed her strength and was obliged to retire with a headache. Passing through Augsburg,
she finally reached Munich, where she found awaiting her, at the gates of the city, the court
carriages celebrated a ched-euvre of painting and sculpture.
From the date of her arrival on the 5th of December, until the last day of the month, she was
alone. The time passed quickly in a succession of entertainments of every kind, and Josephine
had scarcely a moment to herself. While the Empress was on her way to Munich, Napoleon
had won the great victory of Austerlitz, and finished his most brilliant campaign. His
affectionate interest in Josephine is displayed in the three letters which he sent her from
the field of battle. To the Empress at Munich. Oestilitz, 3 December, 1805. I have beaten the Russian
and Austrian armies commanded by the two emperors. I am somewhat fatigued. I have bivouk to
weaken the open air and the nights have been quite cold. Tonight I sleep in the chateau of
Prince Connitz. The Russian army is not only defeated but destroyed. I embrace thee. Napoleon.
Austerlitz 5 December
I have concluded a truce
The Russians are going back
The battle of Austerlitz is the finest that I have ever fought
Forty-five flags
More than 150 cannon
The standards of the Russian Guard
20 generals
30,000 prisoners
More than 20,000 killed
A horrible sight
The Emperor Alexander is in despair
And has set out for Russia
I met the
of Germany yesterday at my bivouac and talked with him for two hours.
We have agreed to make peace quickly. I am looking forward with great pleasure to the moment that I
can join thee. Adieu, my bon ami. I am quite well, and I long to embrace thee. Napoleon.
Austerlitz, 7 December. I have concluded an armistice. In a week, peace will be made.
I am anxious to know if you reached Munich in good health. Adieu, mon ami.
I long to see thee again.
Napoleon.
But Josephine was no more prompt in answering his letters than during the campaign of Italy,
and a few days later Napoleon wrote again,
To the Empress at Munich, Brune, Ten December.
It is a long time since I have received any news of thee.
Have the fine fate of Baddn, Stuttgart, and Munich,
made thee forget the poor soldiers covered with mud, drenched with rain and blood.
I leave soon for Vienna.
We are working to conclude peace.
I long to be near thee.
Adieu, my ami.
Napoleon.
The silence of Josephine still continued,
and Napoleon addressed her once more
in a tone of wounded pleasantry.
Vienna, 19 December.
Great Empress.
Not a letter from you since your departure from Strasbourg.
You have visited Baden, Stuttgart and Munich
without writing us a word.
That is neither kind of.
nor affectionate.
Dane, from the height of your granders, to bestow a thought upon your slaves.
Napoleon
The profound egoism of Josephine and the affectionate kindness of Napoleon were never displayed
more clearly than during this separation of three months.
While the emperor was risking his life and his fortunes on the snow-bound plains of Moravia,
Josephine was amusing herself like a debutante at the brilliant courts of the South German princes,
without a thought for anyone but herself.
By her indifference and her infidelities,
she had long since killed the early passionate devotion of her husband,
and the day was not far distant
when reasons of state would force him to stifle the feelings of tender affection,
which still bound him to Josephine and reluctantly decide upon a divorce.
Finally, Josephine finds time to write and pleads illness as the reason for her silence.
Napoleon immediately replies in a tone of tender solicitude,
To the Empress at Munich
Schoenbrun, Vienna, 20th December.
I have just received your letter of the 25 Frimère, 16 December.
I am worried to learn that you are indisposed.
It is not well to travel a hundred leagues at this season.
I do not know what I shall do.
It all depends on events.
I have no volition.
I await the issue.
Remain at Munich.
Have a good time.
It is not difficult amid such society.
society and in so fine a country. I am myself quite busy. In several days I shall have reached a
decision. Adieu, mon ami. A thousand loving thoughts. Napoleon. On the last day of December
at 1.45 in the morning, Napoleon entered Munich under a triumphal arch. The following day the
elector was proclaimed King of Bavaria. The Treaty of Presburg signed on the 26th December
gave to Bavaria,
Vertamberg and Baden
considerable increases of territory,
also to the two electors the title of king,
and Napoleon had determined
that these aggrandizements
should be paid for by three marriages.
That of his stepson Eugenie with the Princess
Augusta of Bavaria,
that of Prince Charles of Baden
was Josephine's cousin,
Stefani de Boerne,
and finally that of his brother Jerome
with the Princess Catherine of Vertemberg.
Augusta was the only daughter of Maximilian,
the new king of Bavaria by his first wife.
After her death he had married Caroline,
the sister of Charles of Badden,
to whom Augusta was now betrothed.
The Vittlesback family,
one of the oldest and most distinguished in Europe,
had ruled in Bavaria for eight centuries.
But Maximilian had become a lecturer
only a few years before
upon the extinction of the senior ruling lines of the family.
Belonging to the cadet branch
and having no fortune in his youth
before the revolution,
he had served in the French army,
and commanded the regiment of Assas.
The happiest days of his life had been passed in France,
and he was very French in his sympathies.
During the Austrian war,
his troops had fought with the Grand Army,
and the Emperor now repaid his loyalty
by raising him to the royal dignity.
The Margrave of Baden, then 77 years of age,
had lost his only son,
and his heir was his grandson, Charles, a youth of 22.
One of the sisters of this young prince
had married Alexander, the Tsar of Russia,
with whom Napoleon was still at war. Another was the second wife of Maximilian of whose daughter Augusta,
Prince Charles, was himself the fiancée. Here indeed was a matrimonial tangle which it required
all of the skill of Napoleon to unravel. For some time past, the Emperor had begun to lay plans
for alliances with the reigning houses of Europe. With no children of his own, three of his
brothers already married, and Jerome for the moment unavailable, he had been obliged to fall back
on the family of Josephine.
As early as the month of July
1804, he had charged
his minister in Bavaria to make inquiries
about the young daughter of the elector
and let him know if there were any projects
for her marriage.
At that time, Napoleon's plans
were all in the air, but a year later
they were definitely fixed.
At Boulogne in September
1805, he gave instructions
to Monsieur de Tziard one of his Chamberlain's
to proceed to Munich and open
negotiations.
At the very outset, Tierra encountered the obstacles already mentioned.
The elector with all his French sympathies could not undertake lightly to offend so many powerful dames, among whom the emperor had few friends.
To break alliances already projected in order to conclude one with the Corsican adventurer was a difficult proposition.
Another serious obstacle was the attachment which the young princess Augusta had formed for her fiancée.
Teleran, tired of seeing the negotiations drag along
and realizing the powerful effect of the emperor's victories,
now ordered Tia to go directly to the elector
and officially demand the alliance.
The emperor, he wrote, has no prince of his name available.
Young Boernet is free.
Brother-in-law of an imperial prince,
uncle of the one who will probably be called to the succession,
step-son of the reigning emperor,
only son of the empress,
there is dignity for you.
Then he drives home his argument with the words,
It is not necessary for me to analyze the consequences and to apply them
in order to be understood by the elector of Bavaria.
It was not necessary, however, for Tiael to use these instructions,
as the elector had already reached a decision,
and sent his minister to see the emperor at Lince
where all the arrangements were made on the 5th of November.
But Napoleon was well aware that it was one thing to
convince men, and quite another to win women to his cause. For this he counted on Josephine.
Ten days later, he sent the Empress instructions to leave her brilliant court at Strasbourg and
proceed to Munich. When Josephine reached Munich the first week in December, she found the young
princess far from ready to carry out the agreements which her father had made for her at Lince
a month before. In spite of all the charms of Josephine, she continued to refuse to break her engagement
to Charles.
affairs were in this state when duroc arrived from vienna on the twenty first december to present the official demand in his letter to the elector the emperor insisted that the arrangements made at lince should be carried out and expressed his wish
to see the marriage celebrated at the same moment as the conclusion of the general peace which will certainly be signed within a fortnight on christmas day the eve of the conclusion of the treaty at presburg the elector to avoid a painful explanation
writes his daughter.
If there were a glimmer of hope, my dear Augusta,
that you could ever wed Charles,
I should not beg you on my knees to give him up.
Still less should I insist that you give your hand
to the future king of Italy
if this crown were not to be guaranteed
by the powers at the conclusion of the peace,
and if I were not convinced
of all the good qualities of Prince Urgen,
who has everything to render you happy.
Reflect, dear Augusta,
that a refusal will make the emperor
as much our enemy as he has been until now the friend of our house.
My very dear and tender father, Augusta replied,
I am forced to break the pledge which I have given to Prince Charles of Baden.
I consent, as much as that costs me,
if the repose of a dear father and happiness of a people depend upon it.
But I am not willing to give my hand to Prince Ejean,
if peace is not concluded, and if he is not recognized as king of Italy.
The Emperor had not yet in place.
informed the viceroy of his plans, but Eugène had no doubt been notified by his mother and had
raised no objections. The day after his arrival at Munich, Napoleon had a long talk with Augusta,
and flattered himself that she was reconciled to the marriage. He therefore wrote Eugène that the
matter was all arranged. Affairs of State urgently demanded the presence of the emperor at Paris,
and he wanted to set out as soon as the contract was signed, leaving Josephine to represent him at the wedding.
but three days passed and nothing was done about the contract.
On the night of the third, the emperor called D'Eurok,
and told him that the contract must be signed at noon the next day,
and that it must provide for the marriage on the 15th.
Accordingly, the papers were signed.
At the same time, the emperor wrote Ejean to make haste to arrive as soon as possible
so as to be certain to find him at Munich.
Napoleon had learned that the Queen of Bavaria was trying to delay matters,
with the idea of breaking off the marriage as soon as he left for Paris.
Augusta was doing her part by pretending a sudden indisposition,
but was quickly cured when the emperor sent his personal physician to see her.
Napoleon made up his mind that it was necessary for him to remain at Munich until after the ceremony.
In the meantime, he left nothing undone to remove the petty obstacles to the marriage.
He ordered from Paris as a wedding present, magnificent jewels,
costing over 200,000 francs,
and directed each of his brothers and sisters
to send gifts to the value of at least 15 or 20,000 francs.
The opposition of the Queen was the most difficult thing to overcome,
for she had two special grievances,
the execution of the Duke Dengen,
and the breaking of the engagement with Prince Charles.
Napoleon was assiduous in his attentions to the Queen,
and was so devoted that he even aroused the jealousy of Josephine.
the queen was not over thirty.
She had beautiful eyes,
a countenance full of life and a fine figure.
What woman could resist
the attentions of a man
as fascinating as Napoleon
when he wished to please?
Meanwhile, Ejean had made haste.
Leaving Padua on the 6th,
the day he received the Emperor's letter,
he crossed the mountains on the 8th
and reached Munich two days later.
At this time Ejean was 24 years of age.
Without being in any way remarkable,
his face was pleasing. He was well built with a good figure of medium height. He excelled in all
physical exercises, and like his father was a beautiful dancer. Kind, Frank, simple in his manners,
without hauteur, he was laughable with everybody. He had a sunny disposition and was always gay.
Napoleon was very fond of him and treated him like a son. As soon as he saw Eugène, the emperor
ordered him to shave off his mustache, which might displease the prince.
at the time of her marriage augusta was only seventeen she was tall well formed with a sylph-like figure and a countenance in which kindness was mingled with dignity she had received an excellent education and had a good head for affairs as plainly appears in her letter to her father
eugene showed all of his mother's savoire in his attentions to his future wife and courted her as warmly as if their marriage were not already arranged the fears of the young princess soon turned to joy and what was to have been a mariajage de confinence became a real love-match
the contract was signed on the thirteen january in the grand gallery of the royal palace the exact terms never became public as the contract was not read as usual and the copy which napoleon
sent Joseph for deposit in the archives of the empire, was afterwards withdrawn by order of the
Emperor. It is known, however, that Napoleon refused absolutely to appoint Eugène king of Italy,
or even to name him as heir to the throne except in case of failure of his own children
natural and legitimate. Eugène henceforth was termed by the Emperor Mofice instead of
Mons Cousin. He had the qualification of imperial and royal highness. He passed the first after the
before Joseph and Louis. In the imperial almanac, he was called the adopted son of the emperor.
After the contract was signed, Marais, the Secretary of State, performed the civil marriage,
which he really was not legally qualified to do. The following day, the 14th of January, 1806,
the religious ceremony was celebrated in the royal chapel. Thus, Napoleon has forced his entrance
into the family of European sovereigns by an alliance with the ancient house of Ittelsbach,
which claims Chalemang for its founder, and so, through his adopted son, becomes related to most
of the reigning families. This first attempt of Napoleon as a matchmaker was a great success.
Eugène and Augusta lived very happily together, and after the fall of the empire, she resisted
all the entreaties of her family to abandon her husband. Their six children all made
distinguished marriages. Eugène, the eldest son, married the queen of Portugal, and his brother
Max espoused a daughter of the Tsar of Russia. Of the four daughters, Josephine married the crown
prince of Sweden, Eugenie, a Hoenzolan prince, Emily, the first emperor of Brazil, Dom Pedro,
and the youngest daughter, the Count of Eurttemberg. A week after the wedding, Prince Eugène and his
wife left Munich for Milan.
Napoleon and Josephine were already on their way to Paris, where they arrived on the night of the 26th of January.
At Paris, the news of the victory of Austerlitz had been received with transports of joy.
Even Madame de Rémyz so severe, so implacable for Napoleon, in her memoir composed after the restoration, wrote her husband on the 18th December 1805.
You cannot imagine how every head is turned.
Everyone sings the praises of the Emperor.
I was so wrought up that I think, if the emperor had appeared at that moment, I should have thrown myself upon his neck, ready afterwards to beg pardon at his feet.
The prolongation of the Emperor's stay at Munich had only served to increase the impatience of the Parisians and had well prepared the stage for his return.
The Bank of France to celebrate the occasion resumed specie payments.
On the 4th February there was a gala performance at the Opera.
When Napoleon entered with Josephine during the second act,
the performance was interrupted while the whole audience arose and cheered.
Soon after his return to Paris,
the Emperor carried out the second part of his scheme
for alliances with the royal families of Europe.
On the 8th of April, 1806,
in the Chapel of the Tullery,
was celebrated with great pomp
the marriage of Charles of Baden and Stephanie de Beau Arnais.
Prince Charles, then 23 years of age
without being exactly ugly had a very plain face.
His pink and white complexion and his chubby figure
gave him the appearance of a Dutch doll,
and his extreme timidity contributed an air of awkwardness.
But these apparent defects were only superficial.
On better acquaintance,
one could appreciate the rare and excellent qualities of his heart,
the refinement of his feelings.
He had that true spirit of kindness
which inspires more affection than qualities more brilliant.
Stephanie, who was born in Paris on the 28th of August 1789, was a distant cousin of Josephine's first husband, Alexandre de Boernet.
Abandoned by her father, Count Claude de Boernet, when he immigrated at the beginning of the revolution,
the child had owed her existence to the charity of friends. At the end of 1804, she was brought to Paris
and placed in the school of Madame Campan by the express orders of the emperor, who was indignant as Josephine's treatment of her
niece at la mode de Bretagne. On his return to Paris after the Austrolyitz campaign,
Napoleon installed the young girl in the Tuileries and soon became very much interested in her.
With her golden hair, her blue eyes, her slight form, her free ways, this girl of 16 greatly
attracted the emperor, and especially so because she showed not the slightest timidity in his
presence. The first week in March, she was formally adopted by the emperor, who gave her a
a dot of a million and a half on the day of her marriage, besides a magnificent collection of jewels
and a trousseau selected by Josephine, which was in excellent taste and of rare elegance.
This marriage made under such auspicious circumstances seemed to promise a happy future, but these
hopes were disappointed, at least at first. Charles, on account of his timidity, failed to
win the love of his wife, who was too young and too frivolous to appreciate his really fine
qualities. But as the old French proverb says,
Tu vint a point to who's attendre. Everything comes to him who waits.
The eyes of Stefani were finally opened, and she came to love her husband very dearly.
So this union ended as so many others begin, in perfect happiness.
Their greatest trial was the loss of their two sons who died soon after birth.
Both of them still young, Charles and his wife at every reason to hold.
hope for another son, but it was not to be.
In December 1818, Charles died suddenly at the age of 35.
This made a great change in the position of Stefani.
The previous year, Charles had issued a pragmatic sanction,
ensuring the succession to the crown to the Counts of Hochberg,
the issue of a Morgonatic marriage between his grandfather,
the Grand Duke Charles Frederick, and the Countess Hodgeburg.
Stephanie won the warm affections of the Grand Dukal family
and of her subjects. Her death in 1860 during the Second Empire was deeply regretted in Baden,
as well as at Paris, where she was a frequent visitor. Her eldest daughter Louise married
Prince Gustave de Vaza and became the mother of the Queen of Saxony. The second, Josephine,
married Prince Charles of Hoheon-Zerlern, and was the mother of the First King of Romania,
as well as that of that prince who in 1870 was the indirect cause of the Franco-German War.
Prince Louis Napoleon wanted to marry the youngest daughter, but Stephanie thought that her visionary cousin was not a good match for her child, so Marie became Duchess of Hamilton instead of Empress of the French.
End of Chapter 19
Chapter 20 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
20, 1806
Queen Artance
On Thursday the 5th of June 18006 at the Tullery, Louis Bonaparte was proclaimed
King of Holland.
He seems to have accepted his new dignity with much reluctance, not that he felt unequal
to the position, for he believed himself superior to any task, but because he feared the
dominating force of his brother.
That the emperor, in sending Louis to Holland, intended to make that country in fact a part
of the Grand Empire, clearly appears in his formal address.
In effect he said to Louis,
You are first of all a Frenchman.
You are constable of the empire.
You are the guardian of my strong places.
The interest of France commands you must obey.
Louis, in substance, replied,
I am a Hollander.
The people who acclaimed me look to me for their happiness.
If Louis was not fully satisfied,
for her part, Autos was in despair.
She felt that it was almost an act of suicide
for her to leave paris to go to this distant country so cold and damp to be shut up with a husband she detested after their marriage in january eighteen hundred two louis and artense had resided in the little hotel loaned them by napoleon in the rue de la victoire
almost from the first day they quarreled over josephine whom louis disliked and whom he wished as far as possible to keep separated from her daughter he soon left paris and was absent for many months practically abandoned
by her husband the second month of her marriage,
Hortons spent most of the spring and summer
with Napoleon and Josephine at the Tuileries and Malmaison.
During the three weeks that her mother went to Plombier,
Hortense did the honors of the chateau.
The situation was rather equivocal
and naturally gave rise to scandal.
It was at this time that rumors were first circulated
regarding the relations of Napoleon and Hortense.
That there was no foundation for these reports
may be stated most positively.
even bourienne who cannot be accused of any great good-will towards napoleon declares i am happy to be able to give the most formal and positive denial to the infamous supposition that bonaparte ever had for ortense any other feelings than those of a stepfather for a step-daughter
authors without belief have attested without proofs not only the criminal liaison which they have imagined but they have even gone so far as to say that bonaparte was the father of the eldest son of ortense it is a lie
An infamous lie.
These reports first put in circulation by the royalists
were repeated by members of the Emperor's own family
and soon reached his ears.
Under the circumstances,
Napoleon thought it advisable for Othons
to have a permanent home of her own.
The last of July accordingly,
he purchased in the name of Louis and Othons
and presented to them a fine mansion
near their temporary residence.
Here on the 10 October 1802
was born their first child, Napoleon Charles.
In response to a formal order from his brother, Louis returned to Paris just in time to be present
on the interesting occasion.
The birth of this child brought about a temporary reconciliation between Otis and her husband,
but Louis soon became uneasy again and left Paris for another absence which lasted until
September 1803.
Then, for a short time, they lived together at Compienne, where his brigade was stationed.
In the spring of 1804, Louis bought a large Otis.
in Rue Charouti, Nourou de Fitte, a most pretentious but very gloomy house without a ray of sunlight.
At the same time, he acquired at St. Lleu about twelve miles from Paris a very beautiful country estate.
For these two properties he paid approximately a million francs.
Ortense spent the summer at St. Leu, which is very near Malmaison.
On the 10th of October, 1804, she returned to her Paris house, where on the following day was born her second son, Napoleon Louis.
This was the child who was baptized with so much pomp
by the Pope himself at St. Clu just a week before his return to Rome.
During the campaign of Austerlitz, Louis was governor of Paris
and displayed so much zeal and activity in his new post
that he won the enthusiastic approval of the emperor,
who always showed for him a strong partiality.
After his great victory of the 2nd December 1805,
Napoleon began to carry out his projects for family alliances,
and for the formation of a ring of buffer states surrounding the French Empire.
Pursuant to this policy, he arranged the two marriages spoken of above,
and now he appointed Louis King of Holland.
Under the orders of the Emperor, Louis should have set out for Holland at once,
but upon one pretext or another, he deferred his departure for a week.
On the 18th of June, the new king and queen of Holland arrived at the Hague,
where they passed the night in the old royal villa known as the House in the Wood.
Howchten Bosch, about a mile and a half from the city.
Five days later they made their solemn entry into the capital
escorted only by native troops.
On the first day of July, Louis wrote the Emperor
that as soon as his affairs were in good order,
he should leave the Hague for a month or six weeks to visit the baths.
Exactly a month after his arrival, therefore,
he set out for Vise Baden accompanied by Otis.
Not satisfied with this course of baths,
A month later, he proceeded to ex la Chappelle.
While Prussia was arming and Russia preparing for war,
the new king of Holland continued conscientiously to take his cure.
At first, Orton seemed quite contented at the hague.
Her vanity was flattered and her imagination carried away by the glamour of royalty.
In departing for Viesbaden,
she took with her the little crown prince, who was her favorite child,
but left the younger boy in Holland.
She was on better terms with her husband than at any period,
their marriage. She was also looking forward to going to Paris for the fate of the Emperor
when she expected to meet Eugen. Only to think of it was happiness. At daybreak on Thursday the 25th
September, 18006, accompanied by Josephine, the Emperor left Saint-Clu to put himself at the
head of his army. They dined at Chalon and continued their route during the night. At two o'clock
the next afternoon they reached Metz, where the Emperor passed six hours in inspecting the fortifications.
At ten o'clock they resumed their journey and arrived at Mayans on the morning of the 28th September.
It is not easy to explain why Josephine wanted to accompany Napoleon to Mayans and take up her residence there during the campaign.
The Emperor certainly wished her to remain at the Capitol and fulfill her obligations there.
Her thought seems to have been to keep as near as possible to Napoleon, in the hope that he would send for her, as at Strasbourg, as soon as his affairs would permit.
napoleon remained only four days at mayance leaving on the evening of the first of october when the hour for departure came he embraced josephine who was in tears and did not seem able to tear himself away from her
with one arm around his wife he drew taleran to him with the other and cried it is very hard to leave the two persons that you love the most then after once more embracing josephine very tenderly he departed
hortense and stephanie both came to mayas to keep josephine company the two cousins were not sorry to be separated for a time from their uncongenial husbands as at strasbourg the previous year josephine held a miniature court and received the homage of the princes of the confederation of the rhine
the sadness of napoleon was not of long duration once more in his element at the head of his troops he regained his habitual composure as usual his correspondence kept josephine
fully informed of his movements.
To the Empress at Mayance,
Bamberg, 7 October
18006.
I leave tonight for Cronatch.
My whole army is on the march.
All goes well.
My health is perfect.
I have not yet received any letter from you,
but have heard from Eugen and Othens.
Stephanie must be with you.
Her husband, who wishes to take part
in the campaign, is with me.
Adieu, a thousand kisses,
and good health.
Gera, 2 a.m. 13 October, 18006.
My affairs are going well and everything as I would wish. With God's help, in a few days I think
that matters will take a very bad turn for the poor King of Prussia, whom I pity personally
because he is good. The Queen is at effort with him. If she desires to see a battle she will
have that cruel pleasure. I am in splendid health. I have put on flesh since my departure.
Nevertheless, I personally cover 20 to 25 leagues a day on horseback in carriage in every way.
I retire at 8 and get up at midnight.
I often think that you are not yet in bed.
Ever thine. Napoleon
Yenna, 3 a.m. 15 October, 1806.
I have conducted some fine maneuvers against the Prussians.
I gained a great victory yesterday.
They had 150,000 men.
I have taken twenty thousand prisoners, one hundred cannon, and some flags.
I was near to the King of Prussia and just failed to capture him and the Queen.
I have been at my bivouac for two hours.
I am very well.
Adieu, mon ami.
Take care of yourself and love me.
If Ortaun is at my aunt's, kiss her for me.
Also, Napoleon and the little one.
Napoleon
Bymar.
5 p.m. 16 October, 1800.
Mr. Teleran will have shown you the bulletin.
In it you will have perceived my success.
Everything has turned out as I planned.
Never was an army defeated worse,
nor more completely destroyed.
It only remains for me to say that I am well
and that the fatigue, the bivouac,
the night-watches have fattened me.
Adieu, my bon amy.
A thousand best wishes to Artance and to the big Monsieur Napoleon.
To tatuo.
Napoleon.
Potsdam, 24th October, 18006
I am here since yesterday and remain here today.
I continue to be satisfied with my affairs.
My health is good.
The weather very fine.
I find Sansoucy very agreeable.
Adieu, my ami.
Napoleon.
At Sansouci, the Emperor found the Chamber of the Great Frederick
in the same condition that he left it at the time of his death,
and still cared for by one of his old servants.
On Sunday he visited the Garrison Church, where in a vault under the severely plain Lutheran pulpit,
is the marble sarcophagus which contains the ashes of the king.
He ordered sent to the Hotel des invalides at Paris,
the sword and hat and sash of the great warrior which lay upon his tomb.
Departing now for the first time from his usual practice,
on Monday the 27 October, Napoleon entered Berlin in triumph and took up his residence in the royal palace.
Meanwhile at Mayans, Josephine was sad and uneasy
because the Emperor still failed to send for her.
Napoleon writes,
To the Empress at Mayance, Berlin, 1st November, 18006.
Teleran has arrived, my ami, and tells me that you do nothing but cry.
What then do you wish?
You have your daughter, your grandchildren, and good news.
These certainly should be reasons enough to feel contented and happy.
The weather here is superb. During the whole campaign, not a single drop of rain has fallen.
I am in excellent health and all goes well. Napoleon.
Napoleon, who rightly held Queen Louisa largely responsible for the war,
and for the disasters which had overwhelmed her people, in his bulletins had referred to the
unfortunate woman in terms which were hardly chivalrous.
Josephine was struck by his lack of delicacy, and ventured to reproach him for his references
to the queen. This called forth the following reply.
To the Empress at Mayence, Berlin, 6 November, 1806.
I have received your letter in which you seem to be displeased because I have spoken disparagingly
of women. It is true that I detest meddlesome women above everything. I am accustomed
to women who are kind, sweet, and winning. Those are the ones I like. If they have spoiled me,
it is not my fault but your own.
besides you will see that i have been very good for one who proved herself sweet and reasonable when i showed madame hatsveld her husband's letter she said to me with sobs and great simplicity it is indeed his handwriting
when she was reading it her accent went to my heart she troubled me i said to her very well madame throw the letter into the fire i shall no longer have it in my power to punish your husband she burned the letter and seemed very high
happy. Since then her husband is entirely tranquil. Two hours later he would have been lost.
You see, then, that I like women who are good, sweet, and naive, for they are the only ones who resemble
you. Adieu, mon ami, I am well. Napoleon. To explain this episode, it should be stated that
Prince de Hatzfeld, the Prussian governor of Berlin, had been allowed to retain his position upon his
promise under oath that he would attend solely to the safety and welfare of the capital.
A letter from him had been seized in which he gave information of the positions of the French
army around Berlin. This, by the laws of war, was military treason, and the penalty was death,
if found guilty by a military commission. This short campaign is without parallel, even in
Napoleon's marvelous career. The pursuit of the defeated army by Murat was the most remarkable
on record. With his cavalry, in three weeks he literally galloped from the Zal to the Baltic,
sweeping up the remnants of the Prussian army and capturing the fortresses as he passed.
To the Empress at Mayence, Berlin, 9 November, 1806.
My bon amy, I have good news to tell thee. Magdebourg has surrendered, and the seven November
I captured at Lubeck twenty thousand men who escaped a week ago. Thus the whole army is taken.
Prussia has left only twenty thousand men beyond the Vistula.
Several of my army corps are in Poland.
I still remain at Berlin.
I am quite well.
Tutetois, Napoleon.
Berlin, 16 November, 1806.
I have thy letter of the 11 November.
I see with satisfaction that my sentiments give thee pleasure.
Thou art wrong to think that they are flattering.
I have spoken of thee as I see thee.
i am sorry to learn that thou art bored at my oz if the journey were not so long it would be possible for thee to come here for there is no longer any enemy he is beyond the vistula one hundred twenty leagues from here i will wait to hear what you think of it
i should also be very glad to see m leon adieu my bon amy to tut at your affairs will not yet permit me to return to paris napoleon
in his final letter from berlin on the twenty second of november napoleon wrote josephine that he would make up his mind in a few days either to send for her or to have her return to paris four days later from kustrin he told her to be ready to start and that he would let her know in two days if she should come
to the empress at mayas mazarets twenty seven november eighteen hundred six i am going to make a tour in poland this is the first city this evening i shall be at poseant
after which I will call you to Berlin
in order that you may arrive the same day as myself.
My health is good.
The weather rather bad.
It has rained for three days.
My affairs go well.
The Russians are in flight.
Napoleon
Posen, 29 November, 1806.
I am at Posen, the capital of Great Poland.
Cold weather has set in.
My health is good.
I am going to make a little trip in Poland.
My troops are at the gate.
of Warsaw. Napoleon. Posen, 2 December, 1806. Today is the anniversary of Austerlitz.
I attended a ball in the city. It is raining. I am well. I love and long for thee.
My troops are at Warsaw. It is not yet cold. All these Polish women are like French women,
but there is only one woman for me. Dost thou know her? I could easily paint her portrait.
But I should make it so flattering that you would hardly recognize it.
Nevertheless, to tell the truth, my heart would only have kind things to say.
The nights are long, all alone.
To Tattois, Napoleon.
The following day, from the same place, Napoleon wrote two long letters,
one at noon and the other at six o'clock.
To the Empress at Mayence, Posen, 3 December, 18006.
I am in receipt of your letter of the twenty-sixthews.
6th November in which I note two things. You say that I do not read your letters. You are
entirely wrong. I am vexed with you for having such a wrong idea. You tell me that it may
have come from some dream, and you add that you are not jealous. I have observed for a long time
that persons who lose their temper always claim that they are not mad, that those who are
afraid often say that they have no fear. You are therefore convicted of jealousy. I have
delighted nevertheless you are wrong nothing could be further from my thoughts in the
wastes of Poland one thinks little of the fair sex yesterday I gave a ball for the
provincial nobility the women are quite pretty quite luxurious quite well dressed
even in Parisian style tutetois Napoleon Posen third December 18006 I have your
letter of the 27 November from which I see that your little
head is turned.
I thought of the verse,
Desire de femme et
a foe qui devour.
You must calm yourself.
I have written you that I was in Poland,
that as soon as winter quarters are settled,
you can come.
You must therefore wait several days.
The greater one is,
the less volition he has.
He is the slave of events and circumstances.
You can go to Frankfurt in Darmstadt.
In a few days I expect to send for you,
but it is necessary.
for events to be favorable.
The warmth of your letter shows me
that you pretty women have no limitations.
What you wish must be.
But I am forced to admit that I am the greatest of slaves.
My master has no bowels of pity,
and this master is the course of events.
Adieu, my ami. Keep well.
Tut at Tu de Trojan.
The Emperor remained at Posen two weeks longer,
and during that period he wrote Josephine again four times.
her jealousy was far from being calmed by his letters but to show her affection and her thought of him alone during the long nights she sent him a rug as a present to the empress at mayons posen nine december eighteen hundred six
i have your letter of the first and i'm glad to see that you are happier also that the queen of holland wants to come with you i am late in giving the order but you must still wait several days everything goes well
adieu mon ami i love thee and wish to see thee happy napoleon posen ten december eighteen hundred six an officer has brought me a rug from thee it is a little short and narrow but i thank thee none the less
i am quite well the weather is very changeable my affairs are going quite well i love thee and much desire thee adieu mon ami i shall be as happy to send you
for thee as thou to come.
To tatois.
A kiss for Orthans, Stephanie and Napoleon.
Napoleon.
Posen, 12 December, 18006.
I have received no letters from you,
but I know that you are well.
My health is good, the weather very mild.
The winter season has not yet begun,
but the roads are bad in a country
where there are no paved highways.
Hortense will then come with Napoleon.
I am the winter.
delighted. I am only waiting for matters to be in shape for me to have you come.
I have made peace with Saxony. The elector becomes king and joins the Confederation.
Adieu, my beloved Josephine.
Tutetois, Napoleon
Posen, 15 December, 18006
I am leaving for Warsaw, but shall be back in a fortnight. I hope then to be able to send for you.
However, if my stay is prolonged, I should be glad to have you return to Paris, where your
presence is much desired. You know well that I am governed by circumstances. My health is
very good. Never better. To Taito'A. Napoleon. The Emperor left Posen before daybreak on
the 16th of December, and arrived at Warsaw at one o'clock on the morning of the third day, having made
two stops en route. Learning that the Russian army was at Pultusk, about 30 miles to
to the north, he at once headed his corps in that direction and started for the front.
The battle fought on the 26th December proved indecisive.
The French, under the command of Lann, were inferior in numbers and could make little progress
against the stubborn resistance of the Russians. The weather was frightful in the roads
almost impassable. The short day was made even shorter by the premature darkness due to
the stormy cloudy weather. The emperor, with his guard, lost the way and arrived on the field
of battle long after the affair was over.
In three letters to Josephine, Napoleon tells of his arrival at Warsaw and the events which
followed. To the Empress at Mayence, Warsaw, 20th of December, 18006.
I have no news of you. I am well. I have been here two days. My affairs go well. The weather is
very mild and even a little moist. As yet we have had no frost. The season is like October.
sober adieu my bon ami i am very anxious to see thee in five or six days i hope to send for thee to tatua napoleon
golemagne twenty nine december eighteen hundred six i send you only a line i am in a miserable barn i have defeated the russians i have taken thirty cannon their baggage and six thousand prisoners the weather is horrible it rains and we are in mud up
to our knees. In two days I shall be back at Warsaw and will write thee.
To Tatois, Napoleon.
Poltusk
31st December, 18006
I had a good laugh over your last letters.
You have formed an idea of the fair ones of Poland which they little deserve.
I received your last letter in a wretched barn where there was nothing but mud and wind with straw for a bed.
tomorrow I shall be at Warsaw
I think that all is over for this year
the army is going into winter quarters
Tutetois
Napoleon
End of Chapter 20
Chapters 21 and 22
of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear
This Lieber Fox recording is in the public domain
21
1807
Madame Valesca
On the first day of the new year, when the emperor was returning from Paltusk to Warsaw,
he stopped to change horses at the gate of the little city of Bronia.
At that time, Napoleon was the idol of the Poles, who hoped through him to secure their
independence, and an enthusiastic crowd had gathered to welcome the Liberator.
D'Eauk descended from the carriage, and with difficulty pushed his way through the throng.
Someone touched his arm, and he turned to look into the large, innocent blue eyes of a young girl who
seemed almost a child. Her beautiful face, fresh as a rose, was flushed with excitement.
Her figure was small, but perfectly proportioned. She was very simply dressed and wore a black
hat with a heavy veil which almost concealed her blonde hair. As D'Eauk at a glance took in these
details, a sweet voice said to him in a perfect French, Monsieur, can you not arrange for me to speak
a moment to the Emperor? D'Eauk conducted her to the door of the carriage and said to the Emperor,
Sire, here is a lady who has braved all of the dangers of the crowd for you.
Napoleon bowed and started to address her, but she did not allow him to finish.
Carried away by her enthusiasm, she wished him a thousand welcomes to her native land,
and expressed her gratitude for what he had done to free it from the yoke of Russia.
Napoleon was so struck with her beauty that he ordered Dureauc to find out the name of the Belle
Inconu.
After many inquiries, the Marshal learned that her name was Marie.
Valeska. Of an old but ruined Polish family, two years before at the age of 16, she had married
the chief of one of the most illustrious houses of Poland, a man's 70 years of age, with a grandchild
nine years older than herself. Count Veleski, who was as intensely patriotic as his young wife,
was then staying at his townhouse in Warsaw. The emperor requested Prince Ponyotowski in whose
palace he was residing to give a ball, and invite the count and his wife to be present.
The prince called in person to extend this invitation.
Marie was frightened at this special mark of attention, and at first refused to accept,
but finally yielded to the entreaties of her husband.
At the ball the emperor paid her many compliments,
and the following day wrote her in terms of warm but respectful admiration.
He also sent her very handsome presents,
but she refused to answer his letters or accept his gifts.
Her coldness only increased the ardor of the emperor,
who never yet had met such opposition to his desires.
Yielding finally to the importunities of all around her,
the chief magistrates of Poland, her family even her husband,
Marie accepted a rendezvous.
She was made to believe that the fate of her country was in her hands,
that heaven had chosen her to be the instrument
of re-establishing the ancient glory of Poland.
Up to this time, Napoleon's Affaird Amour had been of short duration,
but this attachment was to end only with his departure
for St. Helena. With the exception of Josephine, Marie Veleska was the only great love of his life.
During the winter, Napoleon continued to write Josephine as frequently as before, but a change will
be noted in the tone of his letters, which must have been perceived at once by a woman as jealous
and suspicious as Josephine. To the Empress at Mayence, Warsaw, 3 January, 1807,
I have received your letter, my ami. Your grief has moved me.
but we must submit to circumstances.
There are too many lands to traverse between Mayans and Warsaw.
Before writing you to come, you must wait until I am able to return to Berlin.
Although the defeated army is withdrawing, there are many matters for me to settle here.
I am strongly of the opinion that you ought to return to Paris where you are needed.
I am well, but the weather is bad.
I dearly love thee.
Napoleon.
Warsaw, 7 January, 18707.
"'Mon ami, I am touched by all that you say to me,
"'but the season is cold, the roads are very bad and hardly safe.
"'I cannot consent, therefore, to expose you to so much fatigue and danger.
"'Return to Paris for the winter.
"'Go to the Tuileries, give receptions,
"'and lead the same life that you usually do when I am there.
"'This is my wish.
"'Perhaps I shall soon rejoin you there,
"'but you must certainly give up the idea of traveling three hundred leagues
at this season across a hostile country upon the rear of the army. Believe that it costs me more
than you to delay by several weeks the happiness of seeing you, but such is the demand of circumstances
and the advantage of affairs. Adieu, my bon amy, be happy, and display character, Napoleon.
In eight letters which Napoleon wrote during the following three weeks there is only a
repetition of the same words. The weather is too bad, the distance is too great, and the distance is too
great, and the road's too dangerous
for me to consent to your making the journey.
Paris demands your return
to give a little life to the capital.
I forbid you to cry or be sad and uneasy.
I wish you to be amiable,
gay, and happy. You are very
unjust to doubt my love and devotion.
The winter was unusually mild for Poland,
but the emperor, whose troops were in winter quarters,
did not expect the campaign to reopen before spring.
In this he was doomed to disappointment.
At the end of January, the Russians began a forward movement, and Napoleon was forced to leave Warsaw to put himself at the head of his army.
To the Empress
Wittembourg, Noon 1, February, 1807
Your letter of the 11th January from Mayence made me laugh.
I am today 40 leaks from Warsaw.
The weather is cold, but fine.
Adieu, my ami, be happy.
Show character.
"'Ello, 3 a.m. 9 February, 1807.
"'We had a great battle yesterday.
"'The victory remained with me, but my losses are very heavy.
"'The losses of the enemy which are still greater do not console me.
"'Nevertheless, I am writing these few lines myself,
"'although I am very tired, to tell you that I am well and that I love thee.
"'Napolian.'
"'In another letter written at six o'clock on the night of the same day
and in four other letters sent during the following week,
Napoleon gives further details of the battle.
Both in his correspondence and in his bulletins he tries to minimize his losses,
which had been enormous.
He states that he took 40 cannon, 10 flags, 12,000 prisoners,
and only lost 1,600 killed, 3 to 4,000 wounded.
He says nothing of the vicissitudes of this terrible day,
of this victory which was so nearly a defeat,
of the terrible suffering of his army from cold and hunger,
of regiments and even entire army corps wiped out,
of the great personal danger which he had run in the cemetery
when he was almost captured by the Russian grenadiers
and only saved by the valor of his guard.
He does not speak of the words wrung from his pale lips
as the night fell on this field covered with dead and dying.
This sight is enough to inspire in princes the love of peace
and the horror of war.
Well, would it have been for Napoleon if he had taken these words to heart?
After the battle, the Emperor was too weak to follow up the retiring Russians,
and was glad to put his troops again in winter quarters.
He selected Osteroda for his headquarters,
and here for weeks he shared all the privations of his men.
During all this time his only residence was a miserable barn,
and it was not until he moved to the castle of Finkenstein,
the first of April, that his quarters became more comfortable.
Napoleon's letters to Josephine from Osteroda were cold, brief, commonplace, almost insignificant.
He spoke of his help, the weather, and ended always with the injunction to be gay.
A letter to his brother Joseph, under date of the 1st of March, gives a better idea of the horrors of this terrible winter campaign.
To Joseph at Paris.
The officers of the general staff have not had their clothes off in two months, some in four.
I myself have gone a fortnight without removing my boots.
We are surrounded with snow and mud,
without wine or Oda V, with no bread,
eating only meat and potatoes,
making long marches and counter-marches,
fighting usually with the bayonet,
and obliged to drag the wounded in slays without cover
over a space of fifty leagues.
Napoleon.
In the eleven letters he sent to Josephine from Mostoroda,
Napoleon says in
substance. Endeavour to pass your time agreeably, do not worry. I am in a wretched village where I shall
still pass considerable time. I have never been in better health. I have ordered what you want for
Malmaison. Be gay and happy. It is my wish. I am looking for the spring which ought to come
soon. I love thee and wish to see thee gay and happy. They say many foolish things about the
battle of Ailoh. The bulletins tell all. The losses are exaggeration.
rather than understated.
I learned that the gossip of your salon in Mayons has been renewed.
Make them stop talking.
You should not go to a small box in a little theatre.
That does not accord with your rank.
Attend only the four large theatres and always use the large box.
To be agreeable to me, you must live in all respects exactly as you do when I am in Paris.
Granders have their inconveniences.
An empress cannot go to the same.
places as a private individual.
Your letter grieves me.
You must not die.
You are in excellent health, and you have no reasonable ground of chagrin.
You should go to Saint-Clu for the month of May, but remain in Paris during April.
You must not think of traveling this summer.
I know how to do other things than make war, but duty is the first consideration.
All my life I have sacrificed everything, tranquility, self-interest, happy to
to my destiny.
These fine phrases were far from satisfying Josephine,
who knew that her Napoleon, in spite of his pretended Spartan simplicity,
sometimes gave himself distractions.
For nearly four months at Mayence,
Josephine had waited in vain for the permission of the emperor to rejoin him.
Finally, on the 3rd of January, he had expressed his wish
that she should return to Paris.
This desire he reiterates in four other letters,
and in more positive form.
it was his letter of the eighteenth which decided her if you continue to cry i shall believe you devoid of courage and character i do not like cowards an empress should have heart
nothing remained but to start the brilliant winter of eighteen hundred five after the coronation had been followed by the two dead seasons of eighteen hundred six and eighteen hundred seven and a paris without a court without balls fight or receptions was very hard on the merchants who complained bitterly
by order of the emperor the princes of the empire had opened their houses but this did not make up for the absence of the sovereigns leaving my aunt's on the twenty sixth of january
the Empress spent the following night at Strasbourg, where a small fate had been improvised in her honor.
The hall of the Hotel of the Prefecture was brilliantly decorated.
After a contredance and a valse, the Empress made the round of the room,
addressing with her usual grace and affability, a pleasant word to each one of the ladies present.
At an early hour on the following morning, Josephine resumed her route,
and arrived at the Tuileries at eight o'clock on the night of the 31st of January.
Her return to the capital was announced the next day at noon by a salvo of artillery
fired by the guns of the invalide.
A little fatigued by her journey, the Empress did not hold a reception until the 5th,
when all the high officials of state called to render their homage.
By Mange, president of the Senate, by Fontaine, president of the corps legislative,
by the president of the tribunal, the vicar general of Notre Dame, and the Prefe de la Cene,
she was welcomed in speeches almost as flattering as those usually addressed to the emperor.
In spite of all this adulation more or less sincere, Josephine was far from happy.
She regretted the absence of her children and of her husband.
She was worried over the dangers which Napoleon was running in this distant campaign
and the reports of his liaison with the Belle Polonaise.
A few days after her return, she wrote Artance.
My journey has been happy, if I may so call it, when a few years.
it has separated me so far from the emperor. I have received five letters from him since my
departure. I want you to write me, especially as you are not now nearer to console me.
Let me know how you are, also your husband and children. Although I indeed receive more people
here than at my aunt's, my heart is nevertheless very lonely, and in writing you will still
keep me company. Adieu, my dear daughter, I love and embrace you tenderly.
During the following month, the heart of Josephine was rejoiced by the news of the birth at Milan
on the 17th of March of a daughter to Augusta and D'Eugène, who was named Josephine by order
of the Emperor. This was the princess who 20 years later married the son of Bernadotte, Oscar,
crown prince, and later King of Sweden. Josephine longed to go to Italy to see her first granddaughter
in her cradle, but feared to leave Paris without the permission of the Emperor. She wrote Orta
that Eugène was delighted at the birth of his daughter,
but complained that he could hardly see her,
as she slept all the time.
The first of April, the emperor changed his residence to Finkinstein,
where he occupied a fine chateau built by the governor of Frederick the Great.
At this time it was the property of Comte de Donat,
grandmaster of the household of the King of Prussia.
It is still owned by the same family,
and at a recent date the room occupied by Napoleon
was carefully preserved in the same condition.
Here, Napoleon was very comfortably installed with his staff and his military family.
An apartment adjoining his own was fitted up for Madame Valesca.
She left at Warsaw her aged husband, whom she was never to see again, and spent three
weeks with the Emperor.
They took all their meals alone, and were served by Constant, the Valet de Chambre of Napoleon.
When the Emperor was not with her, Marie passed her time in reading, or in watching from
the windows the parades in the court of the chateau, which were often commanded,
by the emperor in person.
She had a very sweet even disposition,
was always gay and full of life,
and Napoleon became more attached to her every day.
During the two months that he lived at Finkinstein,
Napoleon, as usual, wrote Josephine two or three times a week.
To the Empress, Finkenstein,
2nd April, 1807.
I have just moved my headquarters to a fine chateau,
much like that of Bessier,
where there are many fireplaces.
This is very pleasant for me,
as I often rise during the night
and enjoy seeing the fire.
My health is perfect.
The weather is fine, but still cold.
The thermometer is at four to five degrees.
Adieu, mon ami.
Tut at you.
Napoleon.
During the visit of Marie,
the letters of Napoleon were even shorter
and more commonplace.
In them there were only a few lines
about the weather, the temperature,
the state of his health,
and his desire to know
that she was gay and contented.
Alas, poor Josephine,
her days of happiness were about over.
After the departure of his
enumorata, Napoleon's correspondence
once more becomes interesting.
To the Empress at Paris,
Inkenstein, 2nd of May,
1807,
"'Mone amy, I have your letter of the
23rd April, and am glad to see
that you are well, also that you still love
Malmeson.'
They say that the Arch-Chancellor,
Cambes Ceres is in love.
Is that a joke or is it true?
It amuses me, but you have not said a word.
I am very well, and the weather is fine at last.
Springtime appears and the leaves begin to push.
Adieu, my ami.
A thousand loving thoughts.
To Tatois.
Napoleon
Finkenstein, 10th of May, 1807
I have your letter.
I do not know what you mean by ladies in correspondence with me.
I love only my little Josephine, good,
Budeuse and Capricious,
who knows how to quarrel gracefully
as she does everything else,
for she is always amiable,
except when she is jealous.
Then she becomes a regular little devil.
But let us return to these ladies.
If I must occupy myself
with someone among them,
I assure you that I should wish them
to be pretty rosebuds,
or those of whom you speak in this class.
I wish you never to dine
except with persons who have dined,
with me that your list should be the same for your assemblies that you never admit at malmaison in
your inner life ambassadors and strangers if you act otherwise you will displease me finally do not allow
yourself to be surrounded by people whom I do not know and who would not come to your house if I were
there adieu my ami to tattois Napoleon
22
1807
Death of Napoleon Charles
On the 5th of May
a date to be ominous in the annals of Napoleon
the little crown prince of Holland
died at the age of four years and seven months
only a few months before
in her hotel in the Rue de la Victoire at Paris
a certain Mademoiselle
Elieuynard de Nuel had given birth
to a male child who received the name of Leon
He was the fruit of a short liaison between the emperor and a reader of his sister, Caroline.
Lyon, who bore a striking resemblance to his father, but inherited none of his talents,
was destined to live through four governments of France and die in poverty at Paris in April 1881
under the Third Republic.
These two events, apparently without any connection, were to change the destiny of Napoleon
and to have a decisive influence upon the fate of Josephine.
The heir presumptive to the imperial throne was dead, and for the first time the emperor was convinced
that it was possible for him to have a direct air of his own blood.
Although the denouement was to be postponed for two years and a half, from that time the divorce
was absolutely certain.
Napoleon Charles, the eldest son of Louis and Ottens, was a child of unusual beauty and intelligence.
The emperor, who loved children, was particularly fond of this little nephew whom he fully
intended to adopt as his heir. He had played with the child as a baby and had seen him develop
with great interest. The little Napoleon was sweet, loving, full of life and spirits, adored by
his mother and also by his gloomy father. In her unhappy married life, this boy was the joy
and the consolation of Orteans, her hope and her pride. During the night of the 4th 5th of May
1807, the little prince was suddenly attacked by the croup, a disease little understood.
at that time. In the morning he was better, and the physicians were hopeful of his recovery.
But the trouble returned again during the evening, and at ten o'clock the child passed away.
No words can describe the despair of the unfortunate mother.
Ortense seemed petrified with grief, and they were afraid that she would lose her reason.
Josephine also was overwhelmed with sorrow. She did not dare to leave the empire, to go to the Hague,
but proceeded at once to the Chateau of Lachen near Brussels where she wrote Ortense.
To Oktance at the Hague.
Lachen, 10 p.m. 14 May, 1807.
My dear child, I have just arrived at the Chateau of Lachen where I await you.
Come and give me life.
Your presence is necessary, and you also must need to see me, and to weep with your mother.
I would have liked to go further, but my strength failed me,
and besides I have not had time to notify the emperor.
I have found the courage to come thus far,
and I hope that you two will be brave enough to come to your mother.
Adieu, my dear daughter,
I am overcome with fatigue,
but above all with grief.
Josephine.
The following night,
Hortense and Louis arrived with their only remaining child,
Napoleon Louis, who was then two years and a half old.
Hortense was like a statue of despair.
She did not shed any tears, and her cold calm, her absolute silence, were more alarming than the most violent manifestations of grief.
When she spoke, which was rarely, it was only to talk of him.
When ten o'clock struck, she turned to one of her ladies and remarked,
It was at this hour that he died.
A special courier had been sent to announce the fatal news to the emperor.
He immediately wrote Josephine.
To the Empress.
at St. Clu, Finkinstein,
14 May, 1807
I can conceive
all the grief that the death of poor Napoleon
has caused you. You can understand the pain that I
feel. I should like to be
near you, in order that you might be
moderate and reasonable in your grief.
You have been fortunate enough never
to lose a child, but it is
one of the conditions and penalties
attached to our human misery.
Let me hear that you have been
reasonable and that you are well.
Do you wish to increase my pain?
Adieu, my ami.
Napoleon
Finkinstein, 16 May, 1807
I have your letter of the 6th of May.
I see by it already the pain that you feel.
I fear that you are not responsible
and that you are too much afflicted by the misfortune which has come to us.
Adieu, my ami.
To Tatois, Napoleon.
To the Empress at Lachen, Finkenstein.
20 May, 1807
I am in receipt of your letter of the 10th of May.
I see that you have gone to Laken.
I think that you can remain there a fortnight.
That will please the Belgians and will serve as a distraction for you.
I have noticed with regret that you are not sensible.
Grief has its limits which should not be passed.
Take care of yourself for your friend, and believe me most sincerely yours.
Napoleon.
It will be interesting to read here the letter written the same day by the emperor to his stepdaughter.
To the Queen of Holland, Finkinstein, 20th of May, 18007.
My daughter, all the news that I receive from the Hague tells me that you are not reasonable.
No matter how legitimate your grief may be it should have its limits.
Do not let it affect your health.
Look for distractions.
Know that life is full of such trials, and maybe the...
the source of so many misfortunes that death is not the greatest of all.
Your affectionate father, Napoleon.
In two other letters to Josephine at Lachen, the emperor writes in much the same vein,
To the Empress at Lachen, Finkinstein, 24th May, 1807,
I have your letter from Lachen.
I see with regret that you are still full of grief,
and that Hortense has not yet arrived.
She is not reasonable and does not design.
to be loved because she loved only her children endeavor to calm yourself and do not cause me grief for every evil without remedy we must find some consolation adieu mon ami to tattois napoleon
finkinstein twenty sixth of may eighteen hundred seven i am in receipt of your letter of the sixteenth i see with pleasure that ortense has arrived at lachen i am annoyed at your report of the kind of stupor which you are in receipt of your letter of the sixteenth i see with pleasure that ortense has arrived at lachen i am annoyed at your report of the kind of stupor which you
she still shows. She should have more courage and control herself. I cannot conceive why they want
her to go to the bath. She would be much more diverted at Paris and find more consolation.
Control yourself. Be gay, and take care of yourself. My health is very good. Adieu,
my friend. I suffer much on account of your grief and regret that I am not with you. Napoleon.
During a brief visit which he made to Danzig the 1st of June, the emperor wrote Josephine and also Otis at the same time.
To the Empress at Manmaison, Danzig, 2nd of June, 1807.
My ami, I have just learned of your arrival at Malmaison.
I have no letters from you.
I am angry with Otis.
She has not written me a word.
I am grieved with all you tell me of her.
How does it happen that you have not?
not been able to divert her a little. You cry. I hope that you will get yourself under control
in order that I may not find you entirely sad. I have been at Danzig for two days. The weather is
very fine and I am very well. I think more of you than you think of the absent one. Adieu,
my ami. A thousand loving thoughts. Send this letter to Ottens. Napoleon
To the Queen of Holland. Second of June, 1807.
my daughter you have not written me a word in your just and great grief you have forgotten everything as if you were never in the future to endure other losses they tell me that you no longer care for anything that you are wholly indifferent
i perceive it from your silence it is not well athence it is not what you promised us your son was all in all to you your mother and i are then of no account if i had been at man
mezon I should have shared your grief, but I should also have wished to have you turned to your
best friends. Adieu, my child, be gay, be resigned. Take care of yourself in order to fulfill all
your duties. My wife is very sad over your condition. Do not cause her more grief. Your affectionate
father, Napoleon. Two days after the Battle of Friedland, Napoleon again wrote to Ottens.
to the Queen of Holland
Friedland
16th of June
18007
My daughter
I have received your letter
dated at Or Leon
Your griefs touch me
But I would like to know that you had more courage
To live is to suffer
And the worthy man strives always
To remain master of himself
I do not like to see you unjust
To the little Napoleon Louis
And to all your friends
Your mother and I had hoped
that we were of more account than we seemed to be in your heart.
I gained a great victory the 14th of June.
I am well, and love you dearly.
Adieu, my daughter, I embrace you with all my heart.
Napoleon.
It must be admitted that Napoleon does not appear to advantage in these letters.
To a mother stupefied with grief,
and to a grandmother almost equally overwhelmed,
he has nothing more consoling to say
than the injunction to be gay
and to seek diversions.
Yet Napoleon dearly loved the little prince
and had fully expected to make him his heir.
The loss of the child must have been a severe blow
both to his affections and his family pride.
The Emperor had in his composition
much of the stoicism of the American Indian
and under this appearance of nonchalance.
He may have concealed his own deep sorrow.
He really had a very profound sensibility
and was not so callous
as his remarks on many occasions.
would lead one to think. To quote his own words, man often appears more cold and selfish than he
really is. At one moment he exclaims, friendship is but a name. At another he says,
We only feel how much we love when we meet again or during absence, and again. Love for one's
children and one's wife are those sweet affections which subdue the soul by the heart and the
feelings by tenderness. In his letters to
Foucher and Mange, the Emperor displayed more feeling. To Foucher on the 18th of May, he wrote,
I have been much afflicted by the misfortune which has befallen me. I had hoped for a more
brilliant destiny for this poor child. To Mange, I thank you for all that you say regarding
the death of the poor little Napoleon. It was his destiny. Again to Foucher, the loss of the
little Napoleon has caused me much grief. I wish.
wish that his father and mother had received from nature as much courage as myself to know how
to endure the evils of life. But they are younger and have reflected less upon the fragility of
earthly ties. Such is his philosophy. He is too much of a fatalist to feel any revolt against
death. He is always ready. For every day, at every moment he faces it, and the unexpected
does not disconcert him. Manifestations of grief are forbidden by his calling, by his duty as
a commander. He had faced death on too many bloody fields to be appalled by the everlasting
night, when deep sleep falleth on men. After a short stay at Lachen, Hortense went with Josephine
to Malmaison, and a few days later proceeded to Cotere in the Pyrenees to take the bath.
Her mother wrote her from Saint-Clu on the 27th May. I have often cried since your departure,
my dear Ortense, this separation has been very painful to me.
I have received news of your son.
He is at the Chateau of Lachen in good health and awaiting the arrival of the king.
The Emperor has written me again.
He participates deeply in our grief.
I needed this consolation, for I have none since your departure.
Adieu, my dear daughter.
Take care of yourself for a mother who tenderly loves you.
On the 4th of June, Josephine again wrote from Saint-Clu.
Your letter has comforted me very much, my dear Artance.
The Emperor has been strongly affected.
In all his letters he tries to give me courage,
but I know that he has been much moved by this unfortunate occurrence.
The King reached St. Lu last night.
He has let me know that he is coming to see me to-day.
He must leave the little one with me during his absence.
You know how much I love this child and the care that I will take of him.
It is my wish that the King follow you.
It will be a consolation for you both to see each other.
All the letters that I have received from him since you left are full of his attachment for you.
Your heart is too sensitive not to be touched by it.
Adieu, my dear girl, take care of your health.
I embrace you tenderly.
This letter displays all the goodness and kindness of Josephine's nature.
She endeavors to soften the reproaches of Napoleon and to bring Autas and her husband together.
A week later, she wrote,
Your son is in splendid health.
He greatly amuses me.
He is so sweet.
I think that he has all the ways of the dear child whom we mourn.
Josephine knew how to console better than the Emperor.
While Otans was in the depths of despair,
and her mother was trying to assuage her grief,
the Emperor brought to an end this terrible campaign of Poland
by the brilliant victory of Friedland.
He tells the story to Josephine in his usual concise, graphic style.
To the Empress at Saint-Clue, Friedland,
15th of June, 18007,
"'Mone ami, I write you only a word, for I am very tired.
My children have worthily celebrated the anniversary of Marengo.
The Battle of Friedland will also be celebrated, and equally glorious for my people.
The whole Russian army put to rout.
80 cannon, 30,000 men killed or prisoners.
Twenty-five generals, killed, wounded or taken.
The Russian Guard crushed.
It is a worthy sister of Marengo, Austerlitz, Yenna.
The bulletin will tell you the rest.
My loss is not considerable.
I maneuvered the enemy with success.
Be reassured and content.
Adieu, mon ami, Napoleon.
Friedland, 4 p.m. 16th of June, 1807.
My friend, I sent you a courier yesterday with the news of the Battle of Friedland.
Since then I have continued the pursuit of the enemy.
Conixburg, a city of 80,000 souls, is in my power.
I have found there many cannon, large magazines, and more than 60,000 guns brought from England.
Adieu, my health is perfect, although I have a slight cold from the rain and the coolness of the bivouac.
Be content and gay.
To tatuat, Napoleon.
From Tilsit on the 19th of June, the Emperor sent Josephine the welcome news that the victory had been decisive and that the campaign was over.
A few days later he wrote that he had met the Tsar Alexander and was very much pleased with him.
He is a very handsome, good and young emperor and has more intelligence than most people think.
He is coming to-morrow to take up his residence in Tilsit.
At Tilsit, the Tsar and the King of Prussia dined every day with the Emperor, as he tells Josephine in his correspondence.
An hour after her arrival, Napoleon paid a visit to the Queen of Prussia,
who was one of the most beautiful and most attractive woman of her.
her day. When she came to dine with him that evening, the emperor received her with great respect at the
door of his mansion. But he was firm in his refusal to mitigate at her request any of the hard
conditions of the peace which he imposed on Prussia. At dinner that night, the queen offered a
beautiful rose to Napoleon, saying with a gracious smile, take it, sire, but in exchange for
Magdebourg. This episode is alluded to by the emperor in the following letter. To the empress at
St. Clu. Tilsett, 7th of July, 1807.
My ami, the Queen of Prussia, dined with me yesterday.
I had to refuse to make some concessions to her husband which she endeavored to obtain from me.
But I have been gallant, while adhering to my policy.
She is very amiable.
Later, I will give you the details which it would take too long to tell now.
When you read this letter, peace with Prussia and Russia will be concluded, and Jerome recognized as King
of Westphalia with three millions of population. This news for you only. Adieu, mon ami,
I love thee, and wish to know that thou art gay and contented. Napoleon.
After a last interview with the Tsar, at the end of which the two sovereigns embraced each other
affectionately, the emperor went for a short visit to Kennexburg. Leaving there at six o'clock on the
night of the 13th of July, he traveled directly to Dresden, where he arrived at five o'clock on
the 17th.
He spent ninety-two hours in his carriage, stopping to rest only twice on route, and then only for very brief intervals.
From Dresden he wrote Josephine the last of his letters during this campaign.
To the Empress at St. Clu, Dresden, Noon, 18th July, 1807.
My ami, I arrived at Dresden at five o'clock last evening, feeling very well, although I remained a hundred hours in my carriage without getting out.
I am staying here with the King of Saxony, with whom I am well pleased.
I have therefore covered half the distance to thee.
It may happen that one of these fine nights I shall fall upon thee at St. Clu like a jealous
husband.
I give thee fair warning.
Adieu, mon ami.
It will give me great pleasure to see thee.
To Tatois.
Napoleon
At six o'clock on the morning of the 27th of July, the Emperor was back at St. Clu, after an absence of over
10 months.
End of chapters 21 and 22.
Chapters 23 and 24 of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
23, 1807, the court at Fontainebleau.
The credit of Talleyrand had never stood so high as at this time.
He had been of great use to the emperor in Poland, and had
ably carried out the negotiations for the Treaty of Tilset.
By way of recompense on the 9th of August, the Emperor made him vice-grand elector.
This great dignity of the Empire gave Talleyrandan the right to replace Joseph on all occasions of ceremony,
but at the same time he was forced to give up the portfolio of foreign affairs
as being beneath the dignity of his new rank.
The emoluments of his new office added to his salary as Grand Chamberlain
and the revenues of his Principality of Benevento gave him an income of half a
million francs. At the same time, his personal fortune was estimated at fully six millions.
Every treaty that he had concluded had brought him enormous gratifications.
On the 15th of August, the fate of the emperor was celebrated with great magnificence.
In the morning a te deum was chanted at Notre Dame. In the evening there was a banquet at the
Tullery followed by a concert and a ballet. The salons of the chateau were filled with all
the dignitaries of the empire in full evening dress.
The emperor appeared on the balcony, holding the hand of Josephine, and was cheered by an immense
crowd in the illuminated gardens below.
A week later was celebrated the marriage of Jerome with the young princess Catherine of
Vortembourg.
The Pope had firmly refused to grant the Emperor's petition for an annulment of the Patterson
marriage, but the French ecclesiastical authorities proved more amenable, and in October
For 18006, the marriage was declared null and void.
Jerome, who was the youngest and also the most worthless of the Bonaparts,
had just received from his brother the Crown of Westphalia.
The princess, who was nearly two years older than her husband,
was a woman of much charm.
She was tall and beautiful, affable in her manners and of superior intelligence.
After a marriage by procuration at Stuttgart,
Catherine came to Paris.
She arrived at the Tzuilerie on the 21st of August.
The contract was signed the next day in the Galerie de Jien and was followed on the 23rd of August by the religious ceremony,
which was performed in the chapel by the Archbishop of Rattisbon, the Prince primate of the Confederation of the Rhine.
Thus was carried out the third part of the Emperor's plan for alliances with the royal families of Europe.
This marriage also proved quite a happy one.
Catherine was devoted to Jerome, notwithstanding his many notorious infidelities, and refused to abandon him after the fall of the empire.
At the end of this month, the King and Queen of Holland returned from their visit to the Basse and the Pyrenees.
Ortense had been joined by Louis at Cotret in June, and they had once more resumed their life in common.
At the time of their arrival at St. Clu, they seemed to be on very good terms with each other, but still sad over their loss.
Orthans was very thin, and already suffering from the beginning of her groseouss.
At the bath she had met the secretary of Madame Mare, Monsieur de Cazes, who had just lost his wife,
and the fact that they were both in mourning had been a bond of sympathy between them.
Reports of their intimacy had reached Paris, and Caroline did not hesitate to retail the scandal
to her brother on his return, even going so far as to insinuate that the interesting condition
of Ortaus was due to the handsome young secretary.
It did not take much to revive the suspicions of the jealous Louis, and discord once more
reigned in the royal household.
Louis naturally wished to take his wife and son with him on his return to Holland, but
the Empress, alarmed at her daughter's appearance, called a consultation of physicians
who unanimously decided that it would be dangerous for Artans in her condition to return
for the winter to the cold, depth climate of the low countries.
The Emperor therefore ordered that Othans and her son should remain in Paris.
Louis submitted with apparent reluctance to his brother's command and departed alone for the Hague.
Ortense, who had previously endured without complaint the unjust suspicions of Louis,
was this time mortally offended and conceived a profound hatred for her husband.
When she found that he had believed her capable of an intrigue gallant at a moment when she was thinking only of death,
in the depths of her despair over the loss of her favorite child,
she resolved never to live with him again.
For the first time in his life,
the Emperor now decided to take a real vacation of eight weeks,
and the court was ordered to assemble
on the 21st September at Fontainebleau.
This historic chateau was always a favorite place of residence for Napoleon,
and now that the Tuileries and Saint-Clu have disappeared,
it is the only royal palace with which his name is identified.
In the autumn of 1807, Napoleon was at the zenith of his glory.
He never yet had known defeat.
At Austerlitz, Yenna and Friedland, he had conquered the three greatest nations of the continent.
To the democratic days of the earlier period of the empire had succeeded an aristocratic regime.
The emperor posed as a new Chalemang, the chief of a family of sovereigns.
To him, the kings of Bavaria, Vertemberg, Holland, Saxony, Naples,
and Westphalia owed their royal crowns.
The reigning princes of the Confederation of the Rhine were his vassals.
From the Baltic to the Pyrenees,
from the Channel to the Adriatic, his will was law.
Accordingly the command had gone forth
that the court was to amuse itself at Fontainebleau.
Pleasure was the order of the day.
Never before had Europe witnessed such a gathering of kings and princes.
The emperor and empress arrived on the 21st of September,
and within a few days there appeared
the Queen of Holland, the Queen of Naples,
the King and Queen of Westphalia,
the Grand Duke of Berg,
Murat, and his wife, Madame Maire,
the Princess Pauline,
Prince Charles of Baden and his wife,
the Prince Primate,
the Duke of Würzburg,
and too many others to mention.
The Emperor had also commanded
the presence of Talleyrand, Bertier,
Champagne, and Marais.
All of the grand officers of the Imperial Household,
the ministers of the kingdom of Italy, and several of the marshals.
This visit of the court to Fontainebleau is one of the most interesting episodes of life under the empire,
and well deserves a chapter to itself.
The emperor never again consecrated so long a period of time solely to pleasure,
and his court was never more brilliant.
Here, for the first and last time, there was a renewal of the life of the Ancien regime,
as it was in the days of the Grand Monarch.
Here came to the surface the same interests passed,
impressions, intrigues, weaknesses, treacheries. In a word, it was a real court. It would require the pen of a
Saint Simon faithfully to depict the scene with all its changing lights and shadows, to seize its
full spirit, and make it live again. It furnishes the theme of one of the most interesting
stories in the memoirs of Madame de Riemuzza. At this time, Napoleon, oblivious of the past,
certain of the future, was proceeding with a firm step, anticipating no one of the
obstacle, or at least certain that he could easily overcome any found in his path.
It seemed to him, it seemed to everyone, that he could not fall except by an event so
unlooked for, so strange and so catastrophic, that a mass of interests in favor of order
and repose were solemnly engaged in his conservation. In fact, master or friend of all the
kings of the continent, ally of many by treaties or foreign marriages, sure of Europe,
by the new partitions he had made, having upon the most remote frontiers in
important garrisons which ensured the execution of his will,
absolute depository of all the resources of France,
rich with an immense treasury in the flower of his age,
admired, feared, and above all scrupulously obeyed,
it seemed as though he had overcome all obstacles.
Such is the picture which Madame de Rémyzard draws
of the emperor at the age of 38 in this autumn of 1807, and she remarks,
Let us suppose that someone, ignorant of the past, had suddenly been thrown in to Fontainebleau at this time.
It is certain that, blinded by the magnificence displayed in this royal habitation, struck by the air of authority of the master, and the obsequious reverence of the great personages who surrounded him, this stranger would have seen, or thought that he saw, a sovereign peaceably seated upon the greatest throne in the world, with all the united rights of power and legitimacy.
As soon as the invited guests arrived at the chateau,
they were informed of the program drawn up by the Emperor for their entertainment.
The different evenings of the week were to be passed in the apartments of the various great personages.
One evening the Emperor would receive, and there would be music, followed by games.
Twice a week there was to be a theatrical performance.
On other nights, balls to be given by the princesses Pauline and Caroline,
and finally, an assembly and play in the rooms of the Emperor.
The princes and ministers in turn were to give dinners and invite all of the guests in rotation.
The Grand Marshal and the Lady of Honor were to do the same, each having a table for 25 persons
every day. And finally there was to be another table for all who were not invited elsewhere.
Even the kings and princes could not dine with the emperor except by special invitation.
On certain days there was a hunt which the guests followed on horseback or in very elegant
Kalesh, which were provided. The Emperor liked the chase more for the exercise it gave him than
for the thing itself. He often abandoned the pursuit of the stag and wandered through the forest
lost in reverie. He was a good but very reckless horseman, and always rode small Arabians
specially trained for his service. The Emperor employed his vacation in working as usual.
He rose at seven o'clock, breakfasted alone, and the days that he did not hunt remained in his
cabinet until five or six. The ministers and secretaries came from Paris with their dispatch
box is exactly the same as though they were at Saint-Clu. He never took account of time or distance,
either for himself or anyone else. While the emperor was occupied in his cabinet,
Josefine always elegantly dressed, breakfasted with her daughter and her ladies, and a later
received in her salon the visits of the guests at the palace. She never liked to be alone and had no
taste for any kind of work. At four o'clock, the Empress dismissed her callers and went to her
room for the rights of the evening toilette, always with her an important function. Quite frequently
during the week, the Emperor came for his wife between five and six, and they went for a drive
together before dinner. They dined at six, and afterwards went to the entertainment arranged for
that evening. The great officials who had the privilege of the Entre could present themselves at
the apartment of the Empress. They knocked at the door.
were announced by the Chamberlain on duty and admitted by command of the emperor if it were a woman she took her seat in silence if a man he remained standing at the side of the room the emperor promenaded back and forth his hands behind his back his head bent forward generally absorbed in his thoughts
occasionally he asked a question and received a brief reply of real conversation there was none everyone stood in such awe of the emperor that he feared to make any remark
At the assemblies it was the same. Everybody around the emperor was bored and he was equally bored himself.
One day he said to Talleyrand,
It is a singular thing. I have brought together a crowd of people at Fonteinblot. I have wanted them to be amused.
I have arranged all the entertainments, yet their faces are all long and everyone has the air of being tired and depressed.
The trouble is, replied Talley Rang, that you cannot
regulate pleasure by the beat of the drum. Here as in the army you have always the air of saying
to each one of us, "'Alo, messieurs and madame, en avant, march!' The Emperor wished two plays given
each week, which must always be different. In addition to these performances by the Comédie
Frenches, there were representations of Italian opera. The plays were always tragedies,
often Cornéille, sometimes racine, but rarely Voltaire, whom Napoleon did not
lake. The whole court was bored to death by these interminable tragedies and yawned or dozed.
There was never any applause and the play was received in cold silence. The emperor himself
either slept or was buried in thought. For the opera, the best Italian singers had been
engaged at large salaries, but they were listened to without a sign of interest.
The fete and spectacler were nominally in charge of Monsieur de Talleyan, the Grand Chamberlain,
but the real work was done by the first Chamberlain,
Monsieur de Ré Muzat,
to whom Talleyan said one day,
I am sorry for you,
for you must amuse the unamusable.
The dreamy discontented disposition
which the Emperor displayed on all occasions
cast a sombreveil over all the assemblies and balls at Fontainebleau.
About eight o'clock,
the court and gala costume
assembled in the apartment
where the entertainment was to be given that evening.
While awaiting the arrival of their majesties,
there was no conversation.
The Empress came first,
gracefully traversed the salon,
took her place,
and then, like the others,
awaited in silence the entry of the emperor.
Finally he came and took his seat beside her.
He watched the dancing with a bored look
which was not conducive to pleasure,
and naturally no one enjoyed the evening.
He soon took his departure
and almost immediately the assembly broke up.
While the court was at Fontainebleau,
the emperor had an affin'clock,
with a beautiful young woman named Gazani.
Teleran had found her in Italy
and had persuaded the emperor
to give her a place in his household
as reader for the empress
while her husband was made a receiver general.
She was tall, beautifully formed
with magnificent dark eyes
and a very attractive face.
In a court where there were many lovely women,
she was generally considered
the most beautiful of all.
She had a very sweet, submissive disposition,
and yielded to the desires of the emperor
from a kind of conviction that it was her duty not to resist him.
At the same time, she displayed the greatest devotion for the Empress
who closed her eyes to this little episode.
As a result, this liaison was of brief duration
and attracted very little attention.
Another love affair which caused much talk,
but was also very brief,
was the sudden passion which the new king of Westphalia conceived
for the charming young Duchess of Baden.
Jerome had not even waited,
until his honeymoon was over before beginning a violent flirtation, and Catherine was very jealous.
Stefani, who had not yet learned to appreciate her husband, was gay and frivolous and naturally coquette.
Jerome danced with her at all the balls, while Catherine, who had inherited from her father a tendency
to corpulence and did not dance, was forced to look sadly on. Finally, one evening when Jerome
had been more than usually attentive to Stefani, Catherine suddenly burst into tears and fell from
her chair in a dead faint. The ball was interrupted, and she was carried into an adjoining salon.
The emperor addressed a few sharp words to his brother. Jerome rushed after his wife,
threw himself on his knees by her side, and with a thousand caresses endeavored to restore
her to consciousness. A few minutes later, the young couple retired to their apartment.
The following day, Napoleon commanded Josephine to have a plain talk with her lively cousin
and bring her to reason.
Stephanie took the reproof in good part,
and both of the young people were too much afraid of the emperor
to renew what had been after all an innocent flirtation.
At this time, the emperor no longer showed his partiality for Stephanie.
He seemed to have forgotten entirely the rules prescribed for her
as his adopted daughter before her marriage,
and only accorded her the rank and precedence of a princess of the Confederation of the Rhine,
which placed her below the queens and the imperial princesses.
from that time on stephanie was a model of decorum in her conduct she showed no regret on leaving forbadden with her husband and this seems to have been the beginning of the perfect accord which afterwards united them
in the meantime octance was living in the greatest possible seclusion her health was very delicate and the memory of her lost child was always with her the emperor displayed for her much affection and esteem
at the bottom of his heart he undoubtedly had more love for her than for his brother but the family spirit was too strong for him to take any active part in their quarrels he had consented to her remaining in paris until after her confinement but he continued to speak of her return to holland
for her part fauteus was equally firm in her determination never to return to this bleak country where she had experienced so much trouble and sorrow she said to the emperor
my reputation is tarnished my health is lost i look for no more happiness in life banish me from your court if you wish shut me up in a convent i desire neither throne nor fortune give peace to my mother distinction to a jeanne who deserves it but let me live tranquil
and alone.
24. 1807.
Projects of divorce
During the two months that the court was at Fontainebleau,
the question of divorce was broached seriously for the first time.
Teleran, who was more familiar than anyone else with the projects of the emperor,
was very quietly working to bring the matter about.
But he wished at the same time to have the emperor make a great alliance,
and above all to be himself the one to negotiate it.
Caroline and Murat were also laying their plans to overcome the lingering affection which still bound
Napoleon to Josephine and which alone kept her on the throne.
Allied with them were Josephine's former friend Foucher and the Secretary of State Marais,
who was secretly jealous of the great and well-deserved European reputation of Teleran,
whom he hoped to supplant in the councils of the Emperor.
As stated above, the death of the Little Crown Prince had made a change in the plans of the Emperor.
his victories in increasing his power had extended his ideas of grandeur and both his vanity and his policy dictated an alliance with one of the european royal families
at the time of his return from tilcet there was some talk of the daughter of the king of saxony in this connection but this princess was at least thirty years old and far from beautiful her father only reigned by the grace of napoleon and such an alliance would not have increased the prestige of the emperor
the conferences at tilcet had justly increased the pride of napoleon the fascination he had exercised over the young czar the ready assent given to all his projects had produced in his mind the thought of a still more intimate alliance
but on his return to josephine after a separation of ten months the old ties which so firmly bound him to her had been again renewed in speaking one day to the empress of the quarrels of louis and ortense and the delicate health of their only
remaining child, Napoleon said that
someday he might perhaps be constrained
by the demands of public policy
to take a wife who could give him an heir.
In broaching the subject,
he displayed much emotion.
If such a thing comes about,
Josefine, he said,
you must aid me to make such a sacrifice.
I shall count upon all your affection
for me to take the responsibility
for this forced separation.
You will assume the initiative,
will you not, and realizing my position?
have the courage to decide yourself upon this rupture.
The Empress understood too well the character of her husband to fall into this trap,
and precipitate by an imprudent word the catastrophe which she so much dreaded.
Therefore, so far from giving him the hope that by her action she would assume the odium of such a rupture,
she assured him that, while she was always ready to obey his orders,
she never would take the initiative.
She made this reply in the calm and dignified.
manner which she knew how to assume with Napoleon, and which was always effective with him.
Even in her private intercourse with the Emperor, Josephine, for some time past, had abandoned
the old familiar tutuement, and she now said, Sire, you are the master, and you will decide upon my
fate. When you command me to leave the Tuileries, I shall instantly obey, but at least you must
order it in a positive manner. I am your wife. I have been crowned by you,
in the presence of the Pope.
Such honors impose the obligation
of not resigning them voluntarily.
If you divorce me,
all France will know that it is you
who drives me away,
and will be ignorant neither of my obedience
nor my profound grief.
This form of reply which was always the same
did not offend the Emperor
and often moved him to tears.
In fact, he was torn by many conflicting emotions.
On the one hand,
he sincerely felt that state policy
demanded an heir to the throne. On the other, he knew that Josephine was loved by the people,
and he hesitated to brave public opinion by repudiating her. When Josephine confided her doubts and
fears to Artans, she was far from finding a sympathetic listener. Her daughter's only reply was,
How can one regret a throne? Two or three weeks before the end of the visit of the court to Fontainebleau,
Foucher arrived one morning from Paris. After a long long time,
private interview with the emperor in his cabinet he was invited to dinner a most
unusual honor towards midnight when all the guests in the chateau had gone to
their rooms monsieur der remusat was summoned to the apartment of the empress he
found her half undressed her hair down and her face discomposed she dismissed
her attendance and crying that she was lost shoved into the hands of the
chamberlain a long letter signed by fuchet in this communication he began by
protesting his former devotion for her, and assured her that it was on account of this feeling
that he ventured to face her situation and that of the Emperor. He pictured the Emperor as at
the zenith of his power, sovereign master of France, but responsible to that same France for the
present and for the future which she had confided to him. It is useless to try to dissimulate
the fact, Madame, he continued, that the political future of France is compromised by the lack
of an heir to the Emperor. As Minister of Plains,
police, I am in a position to know public opinion, and I know that there is much disquietude
over the matter of the succession to such an empire. Figure to yourself, madame, the stability which
the throne of his majesty would possess today if it were founded upon the existence of a son.
This advantage was ably developed at length, as indeed it might well be. Then he spoke of the
conflict between the conjugal tenderness of the emperor and his public policy. He foresaw that the
emperor would never make up his mind to dictate so grievous a sacrifice. He therefore ventured to advise
her majesty, to make herself a courageous effort, and to immolate herself for France.
He drew a most pathetic picture of the glory that such an action would give her now and in the
future. The letter ended with the assurance that the emperor was ignorant of this step, that the
writer feared it would displease him, and the empress was solicited to keep the matter of profound
secret. It was obvious that Foucher would never have ventured to write such a letter without the
knowledge of the Emperor. What shall I do? cried Josephine. How shall I meet this storm? Remusat
advised her to see the Emperor, either that night or the first thing in the morning, ask him to
read the letter and observe his face while he did so. Also, to express her indignation at this
uncalled for advice, and to reiterate her determination never to accept anything but
a positive command from the emperor himself.
Josephine adopted this advice, and as the hour was late, deferred her interview with the emperor
until morning.
When she showed Napoleon the letter, he pretended to be very angry.
He assured her that he was entirely ignorant of this step, that Foucher had displayed a zeal
most uncalled for.
That if the minister had not already left for Paris, he would have taken him sharply to task,
that he would punish Fouche if she so desired, and he would punish Fouche if she so desired,
and even dismiss him from his position in the ministry.
He was very affectionate with Josephine,
but she was far from being reassured by his explanation and promises.
Talleyrand, when informed of this matter,
expressed the opinion that the letter of Foucher was ridiculous and improper,
and advised that the Empress should reply in a very dignified tone
to the effect that she did not require his services
as an intermediary between herself and the emperor.
She wrote such a letter,
which was read and approved by Talleyrand,
and then submitted to the emperor
who did not venture to censure it.
When Foucher returned a few days later,
the emperor treated him very coldly,
but he did not appear to notice her manner.
Napoleon said to Josephine,
He acted from an excess of zeal.
You must not treasure it up against him.
It is enough that we are determined
to reject his advice,
and that you know well that I cannot live without you.
On the 5th of November the Emperor wrote Foucher,
For a fortnight past you have made foolish blunders.
It is time that they came to an end,
and that you ceased to meddle directly or indirectly
with a matter which does not in any way concern you.
Such is my wish.
The outcome of the whole affair
was the temporary renewal of the former close relations
between Napoleon and Josephine.
He displayed for her all of his old affection,
and little by little her fears were dissipated.
During all this period, the Empress was guided by the advice of Talleyrand.
When Madame de Ré-Muzza expressed her surprise at his course, he replied,
There is no one here in the palace who should not wish to have this woman remain by the side of the emperor.
She is kind and good.
She has the art of calming him.
She takes an interest in the affairs of everybody.
If we see a princess arrive here, you will see the emperor break with the entire court,
and we shall all be able to.
crushed. These were wise words and true, and almost convinced one that Teleran at the moment was
sincere. It is not difficult to understand the motives which actuated Foucher and Talleyan in the
somewhat involved affair. Fouche had sufficient perspicacity to realize that with the emperor,
the question of policy would in the end outweigh all other considerations. He had therefore
joined the party of Caroline, who detested all the Boernet, and for person, and for
personal reasons also, wished to see her brother enter the family of some European sovereign.
Once committed to this undertaking, Fushi used, without scruples, his position as Minister of
Police to work up public opinion. He instructed his secret agents to discuss in the cafes
and other public places the necessity of an heir to the Emperor. These suggestions were
reported by other agents to the Minister and by him to the Emperor, who easily became convinced
that the people were more interested in the question than was probably the case.
With his usual shrewdness, Teleran took advantage of the sentiment thus worked up by his rival
to turn it to his own personal benefit.
At the bottom of his heart, Teleran may not have been in favor of the divorce,
but if it must be, he wished to bring it about in his own time and in his own way,
and above all, to get the credit.
The Mura-Cotry favored strengthening the alliance already concluded with Russia
by a matrimonial connection.
But Talleyrand, better informed
regarding foreign relations,
knew that the mother of the Tsar
would never consent
to give the hand of one of her daughters
to the murderer of the Duc Dengue.
Besides, the affair of Spain
was about to come to the front,
and the time was not opportune
to bring forward the question of divorce.
Moved, therefore, both by sentiment
and by policy,
Teleran for the time being
opposed and checkmated the efforts of Foucher.
Finally, the fact
at Fotenbleau came to an end,
much to the delight of everyone.
When the Emperor called for a statement
of the expenditures, he was surprised to learn
that the total did not exceed 150,000 francs.
The last visit of Louis XVIth
had cost about two millions.
The imperial household, under Duroc,
the Grand Marshal of the palace,
was run with military discipline and economy.
The servants were always at their posts
and scrupulous in the performance of their duties.
everything moved like clockwork.
No detail was overlooked by the Marshal,
and he reported directly to the Emperor,
who personally supervised and directed the work of the household.
While the court was still at Fontainebleau,
Josefine received the news of the death of her mother,
who passed away on the 2nd of June 1807 at the age of 70,
at her residence in Martinique.
Josephine, who dearly loved her mother,
had done everything possible to persuade her to come to live in France
where she would have received a warm welcome.
But this venerable lady
preferred her modest and quiet home
to all the splendors of the imperial palaces.
On the 16th of November,
the Emperor left Fontainebleau for Italy
and Josephine returned to Paris.
She would have liked to make the trip with him
to see her son Eugen and the little granddaughter
who bore her name,
but this time Napoleon absolutely refused his consent.
He said that he would only be gone
two or three weeks,
that the weather would be very cold
and that she had better await his return at the Tuileries.
On the 20th of November,
the Emperor crossed Monsigny in a raging snowstorm
and reached her in the same evening.
The following day he proceeded to Milan
where he was welcomed by Eugen.
During the five days that he passed in the city,
there were religious ceremonies at the cathedral,
reviews, and a gala performance at the Scala.
On the 28th of November,
he arrived at Venice,
where he had with him,
his brother Joseph, king of Naples, his sister, Elisa, Princess de Luc, Prince Eugène,
viceroy of Italy, the king and queen of Bavaria, Murat and Bertier.
After spending ten days at Venice, the emperor went to Mantua, where on the 13th of December
he had a long interview with his brother Lucien. It will be remembered that Lucien, in opposition
to the wishes of the First Consul, had married his mistress, Madame Jubertu.
Napoleon desired him to get a divorce and marry M.
Marie-Louise, daughter of King Charles of Spain, and widow of the King of Ectoria,
but Lucien spurned this brilliant alliance.
In the spring of 1804, he went into voluntary exile at Rome, where he was followed by
his mother, who refused to return to Paris even for the coronation.
During the evening the emperor sent his secretary, Minerval, to find Lucien at the inn where he
was staying and conduct him to the palace.
Lucien greeted his brother very coldly and with much dignity.
After once more reproaching Lucien for his marriage and indulging in some threats as to what he would do if his brother still refused to meet his wishes, the Emperor made this proposition.
He would recognize as members of the imperial family, the daughters of Lucien by both his marriages.
He would consider his second marriage as legal, but would not recognize his wife as an imperial princess, or consider as legitimate the son born before their marriage.
If Lucien would divorce his wife, the Emperor would place his wife.
him in the same position as his brothers in the imperial family and would give him a throne probably that of portugal he would continue to live quietly with madame jubertou if he wished but she could never participate in the honors of royalty
lucien refused absolutely to divorce his wife and declined to be separated from his children that was his last word during this long interview which lasted more than six hours napoleon exhausted all of his resources both in the way of threat
and promises, in the effort to frighten or persuade his brother to comply with his wishes,
but all in vain. At the end of the interview, the brothers parted with much emotion, and Lucien returned
to Rome. The next day the emperor left for Milan, where on the 17th of December, he issued the
famous decree declaring the British Isles in a state of blockade both by land and by sea.
On the 20th of December, in the Grand Hall of the Royal Palace, Napoleon adopted.
Eugène as his son and as his presumptive successor to the crown of Italy.
At the same time he gave to Ejean the title of Prince of Venice
and to his daughter, that of Princess de Bologna.
On the 24th of December, the Emperor left Milan for Paris,
where he arrived on the night of the first day of January, 1808.
During this long absence of nearly seven weeks,
Napoleon only wrote Joseph in three short letters.
To the Empress at Paris, Milan, 25 November, 1807.
I have been here, Mon Ami, for two days.
I am very glad that I did not bring you.
You would have suffered terribly in the passage of Monsigny,
where a storm detained me twenty-four hours.
I found Eugen very well.
I am well satisfied with him.
The princess is ill.
I have been to see her at Monsa.
She has had a fosk, but is better.
Adieu, my ami
Napoleon
Venice
30th of November
18007
I am in receipt
your letter of the 22nd November
I have been at Venice for two days
The weather is very bad
Which however has not prevented me
From traversing the lagoons
To see the different forts
I am glad to hear
that you are enjoying yourself at Paris
The King of Bavaria with his family
Also the Princess Elyza are here
After the 2nd December
anniversary of the coronation which i shall pass here i shall be on my way home and very glad to see you adieu mon ami napoleon napoleon
i have received mon ami your letter of the third december from which i see that you were much pleased with the jardin des plant i am now at the most distant point of my trip it is possible that i shall soon be at paris where i shall be very glad to see you again the weather
here has not yet been very cold, but it is very rainy. I have taken advantage of the last moment
of the season, for I suppose that by Christmas the winter will have set in. Adieu,
Mon Amie, To Totot-Awa, Napoleon.
End of Chapters 23 and 24. Chapter 25 and 26 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire,
by Walter Gear. This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
twenty five eighteen hundred eight the empress at bayonne when napoleon arrived at the tuileries at nine o'clock on the evening of the first day of january eighteen hundred eight josephine threw herself into his arms and tenderly wished him a happy new year
since the visit to fontainebleau the empress had known little peace of mind she lived in the constant apprehension of a renewal of the projects for a divorce she no longer treated napoleon with the familiarity of other days
but addressed him as a sovereign rather than as a husband.
The winter season at Paris was never more brilliant.
Every evening there were concerts, balls, formal dinners.
The court of the Empress was as well attended as formerly.
In outward appearances nothing had changed.
Josephine, who did the honors of the Tuileries with her usual grace,
was as much admired as ever.
The emperor, still undecided, vacillated between the voice of his heart
and the demands of state policy.
He said to Talleyrand,
If I separate from my wife,
I shall renounce at once all the charm she brings to my private life.
I must study the tastes and habits of a new and young wife.
This one adapts herself in every way and knows me perfectly.
Finally, I shall repay with ingratitude all that she has done for me.
For me she is a tie with many people.
One evening, when there was a reception at the chateau,
the emperor failed to appear,
and it was announced that he was in time.
disposed. After dining with the Emperor, as usual at six o'clock, Josephine had gone to her room to
change her dress for the evening. When she was ready for the reception, a Chamberlain came to tell her
that the Emperor was ill and she rushed to his side. She found Napoleon in a state of great
nervous excitement. He wept and pressed her in his arms without any regard for her elegant
toilette crying, No, my poor Josephine, I can never leave thee. Instead of joining her guest,
guests, Josephine was compelled to pass the night with her husband, and it was not until morning
that he recovered his equanimity.
"'What a devil of a man!' said Talleyrand in disgust, when the astonished assembly was curtly
dismissed.
"'What a devil of a man to give way continually to his first impulse, and never know what he wants
to do!'
On the first of February at the Hotel of Queen Orteance, Rue Chorouti, was celebrated the marriage
of Prince Dandenberg and Mademoiselle Stifany de Tachie.
Josephine's cousin and goddaughter, who had been celebrated an imperial precesses by the emperor
on the occasion of the signing of the contract. During the consulate her hand had been asked in
marriage by General Rapp, one of the favorite aide-de-car of Napoleon, but Josephine, who retained
many of the prejudices of the Ancien regime, refused her consent. This Aronberg marriage was not a success.
The princess could not endure her husband and refused to live with him. At a later date, the marriage was annulled,
and she espoused Comte de Guittry.
In the midst of his domestic preoccupations,
the emperor had not ceased to follow closely
the course of events in Spain.
The Spanish bourbons were descended
from her grandson of Louis XIV,
Philip of Anjou, who became King of Spain in 1700,
under the title of Philip V.
At the beginning of 1808,
the royal family of Spain comprised the king,
Charles IV, a man of 60,
his wife, Marie-Louise,
who was three years younger,
and their son, Ferdinand, Prince of the Asturias, a boy of 20.
To this interesting group must be added the Queen's lover, Godois, Prince of the Peace.
Ferdinand had formed a plan of seizing the government, but the plot was betrayed to the king and he was put under arrest.
Portugal had refused to accept the Berlin decree of Napoleon, prohibiting the importation of English goods,
and Napoleon had arranged with the Tsar at Tilset for the occupation and dismemberment of that country.
While the above events were happening at Madrid,
Gino, at the head of a French army of 25,000 men,
had advanced to the gates of Lisbon.
Before his arrival, the royal family embarked on the fleet and sailed for Brazil.
On the 20th of February, 1808,
the Emperor appointed Murat his lieutenant to command the French troops in Spain,
and a week later he announced to the Court of Madrid
his intention to annex to the French Empire,
all of Spain north of the Ebro,
giving the Spanish crown by way of compensation,
all of Portugal.
Alarmed at this proposition,
Charles made preparations to flee the country,
but the news became known,
there was a popular uprising
and he abdicated the throne in favor of his son.
In the meantime, the French army under Murat
was advancing on Madrid,
and on the 23rd March it entered the city.
Charles now wrote the emperor
that his abdication had been forced upon him
and asked to be reinstated upon his throne.
Ferdinand also presented his claims
at the same time, and Napoleon invited all of the interested parties to meet him at Bayonne for a conference.
On the second day of April, the Emperor quietly left St. Clu ostensibly for a visit to the south of France.
He was not accompanied by Josephine, but it was arranged that she was to follow him a few days later.
Napoleon reached Bordeaux on the 4th and Josephine on the 10th.
On the 13th of April, the Emperor proceeded to Bayonne.
Two days after his arrival, he inspected the chateau of Marac, located about a league from the city which he arranged to purchase for his residence.
It was only an ordinary country mansion and altogether too small to lodge comfortably the emperor and his suite.
During his sojourn at Bayonne, the emperor held frequent reviews of his troops, passing through on their way to Spain as many as a hundred thousand men defiling under his eyes.
He went out daily and loved the promenades upon the Adour to work.
he never announced in advance either the hour or the course of these excursions often changing the direction and returning to the chateau from the point where he was least expected often he directed his steps towards a dove-coat in the form of a small tower which was located on the extremity of the outer wall of the park
from there he descended to the banks of the niva and went nearly every day sometimes on foot and sometimes in a boat to visit his sister caroline who was living at
on the twentieth of april the emperor received prince ferdinand who arrived that day and entertained him at dinner six days later the prince de la pei appeared and had a long conference with napoleon on the twenty seventh of april josephine came from bordeaux during this fortnight the emperor sent josephine
in four letters. To the Empress at Bordeaux, Bayonne, 16 April, 1808. I arrived here very well,
but somewhat fatigued by the route which is dismal and very poor. I am very glad that you
remained, for the houses here are very small and very bad. I am going today to a little house in the
country, half a league from the city. Adieu, mon ami, good health. Napoleon. 17 April, 1808. I have
your letter of the 15th of April. What you tell me of the country landowner gives me pleasure.
Go sometimes and pass the day there. I have given orders to add 20,000 francs a month to your
allowance during the trip to date from the 1st of April. I am horribly lodged. In a half hour I'm
going to change and take up my residence in a small country house at a distance of half a league.
The Infante, Don Carlos and five or six Spanish grandees are here. The Prince of the Asturias is
twenty leagues away. King Charles and the Queen are arriving. I do not know where I shall lodge all these
people. Everything is still at the inn. My troops in Spain are well. It took me a moment to
understand your gentillas. I laughed over your souvenirs. You women certainly have a memory.
My health is quite good and I love you very dearly. It is my desire that you be very friendly
with everybody at Bordeaux.
My affairs did not permit me to do so personally.
Napoleon
21 April, 1808
I have your letter of the 19th of April.
Yesterday I had the Prince of the Asturias and his suite to dinner.
That gave me much trouble.
I await Charles IV and the Queen.
My health is good.
I am now quite well established in the country.
Adieu, my ami.
I always receive news of you with the great
pleasure. Napoleon. Bayonne, 23 April, 1808.
My ami, Ortense, has a son. This has greatly rejoiced me. I am not surprised that you do not speak
of it, for your letter is dated the 21st, and she was confined during the night of the 20th.
You can set out on the 26th, past the night at Mont de Marseau, and arrive here the 27th.
I am arranging for you here a small country-house beside the one which I occupy.
my health is good i am looking for charles the fourth and his wife adieu mon ami napoleon the child referred to in the emperor's last letter was louis napoleon the future napoleon the third emperor of the french
he was born in paris on the twentieth of april eighteen hundred eight at the townhouse of queen ortense in rue cheruti and not at the tuileries as erroneously stated by many historians by the express orders of the emperor who sent ortans
a letter of congratulations.
He was called
Charles Louis Napoleon
in honor of his grandfather
Bonaparte,
his father,
and his uncle.
Josephine's first letter
to her daughter,
written on the 23rd April,
begins in a jubilant tone.
I am at the summit of joy,
my dear Orthonse.
I know Napoleon
is consoled at not having a sister
and that he already
loves his brother very much.
Kiss them both for me.
Two days later,
she wrote again,
I am just in receipt, my dear Hortons, of a letter from the Emperor.
He is perfectly delighted.
At the same time, he summons me to rejoin him at Bayonne.
You can imagine, my dear daughter, that it is a great pleasure for me not to be away from the Emperor,
so I set out early to-morrow morning.
I am pleased at the news I receive of your health.
I beg you always to take good care of yourself, and, above all, not to receive company these first few days.
I cannot write you again for two or three days,
but I shall think of you every moment.
I embrace you.
Adieu, my dear, Ortense.
Josephine had the great satisfaction
of finding Napoleon in a most loving mood toward her.
He spent all of his spare time with her
and displayed unusual signs of good humor.
One day on the beach,
undeterred by the presence of the escort,
he chased her over the sands and pushed her into the water.
Another time he picked up a shoe which fell off her foot
as she got into a carriage and flung it away in great glee over the idea that she would have
to go home without one. On the last day of April, the Spanish sovereigns arrived at the
government palace at Bayonne. The emperor immediately called on them, and that evening entertained
them at dinner at Maracques. On the 5th of May, when the emperor after Dijon was riding with Savarri,
he received the news of the uprising at Madrid three days before. He immediately galloped to Bayonne,
where he had a spirited interview with Charles and his son.
To Ferdinand, he said,
Prince, up to this moment I have taken no stand
in the controversy which has brought you here,
but the bloodshed at Madrid ends my resolution.
I shall never recognize as King of Spain,
the person who, by ordering the murder of French soldiers,
has been the first to break the alliance
which has so long united our two countries.
I have no ties except with your father.
I recognize him.
him as king and will escort him to Madrid if he so desires.
The prince made no reply, but Charles, with the visions of Charles I and Louis XVI ever troubling
his thoughts, had no desire to remount his precarious throne.
That same evening, by a treaty signed for the emperor by Duroc, and for the king by the
prince de la Pei, Charles ceded to Napoleon the crown of Spain and of the Indies, in exchange
for the use of the chateau and forest of Compiagne, the title in perpetuity.
to the Chateau of Chambard,
and a civil list of seven millions and a half
to be paid by the French government.
By another convention,
signed on the 10th of May,
Ferdinand also ceded his rights to the crown.
He was accorded the title in France of Royal Highness,
received for himself and his descendants
the Chateau of Navarre,
and was given an allowance of a million francs.
Such was the price of the magnificent heritage
of Charles Quint.
On the 4th of June,
by an official act, Napoleon ceded to his brother Joseph all of the rights acquired under the above
treaties. Three days later, the new king of Spain arrived at Bayonne and that evening attended a
grand dinner given by the emperor at Marac, at which were also present the members of the
Grand Junta of Spain who had been summoned by Napoleon two weeks before. Napoleon had reached
the turning point of his career. With easy confidence and a light heart, he embarked on an enterprise
which was to baffle him at every stage, to drain his resources, to cost him 300,000 valuable
lives, and to end in absolute failure. At St. Helena, he said,
It was the Spanish ulcer which ruined me. The first week in July, the junta accepted the new
constitution drawn up for Joseph under Napoleon's orders, and a few days later the new king
left for Madrid. Napoleon started homeward again in company with Josephine. It was
arranged that they should travel together as far as Toulouse whence the emperor was to
go to Bordeaux and Josephine to take the waters at Parage.
The emperor reached Bordeaux on the 31st of July, and there he learned two days later,
of the capitulation of DuPont at Bailen with an army of twenty thousand men and the flight
of King Joseph from Madrid.
It was the first serious disaster to the Imperial Arms, and Napoleon was wild with rage
at this blow to his prestige.
The Emperor at once realized the necessity of his own presence in the Peninsula, but before
going there he wished to organize a well-equipped army, and also to assure himself of the
solidarity of his alliance with the Tsar.
This meant a return to Paris, and Josephine received orders to abandon her trip to Barrage
and rejoined the Emperor.
On his way home the Emperor visited Rochefort and La Rochelle, and then in company with Josephine
who had rejoined him, he proceeded by way of
and Blois to Saint-Clu where he arrived on the eve of his fate.
26, 1808 to 1809.
A year of anxiety.
The last year that Josephine was destined to wear the imperial crown
was for her a period of constant anxiety.
She knew that the divorce was inevitable,
and that her days upon the throne were numbered.
Before the fatal decree was passed, however,
she had yet many trials to endure.
From the date that the Emperor left for Airford to that eventful evening in December,
1809, she saw but little of her husband who was absent from France the greater part of the time.
Returning from Bayonne on the 14th of August, the Emperor immediately began preparations on a large scale
to put down the revolt in Spain and restore his brother to the throne. For the sake of his own
prestige also, it was necessary as soon as possible to repair the damage done by the capitulation of
General Dupon. He had therefore decided to enter Spain himself at the head of the Grand Army,
the invincible veterans of Austrolyitz, Yenna, and Friedland. Before leaving for the peninsula, however,
he wished to feel certain that there would be no change in the political situation during his
absence. Above all, he wanted the assurance that his new ally, the Tsar, was still as favorably
disposed towards him as when they parted at Tilsit the previous year. He therefore suggested an interview
and Alexander accepted.
The meeting took place at the
little German city of Erfurt
and lasted from the 27th September
to the 14th of October.
All of the Allies of the Emperor
were present. The kings of
Bavaria, Vertemberg, Saxony
and Westphalia, the
prince primate and all the princes of the
Confederation of the Rhine.
The actors of the Comédieie Francais
summoned from Paris played before
a parterre of kings.
To her great regret,
Josephine was not allowed to accompany the emperor, and she divined that her divorce would be one of the subjects of discussion.
In this, she was not mistaken.
The Tsar had two sisters of her marriageable age.
The Grand Duchess Catherine and Anne and Napoleon had thought of the elder as a possible wife.
At one of their conferences, the emperor approached the subject by saying to Alexander,
This life of agitation wearies me.
I need rest, and look forward to nothing so much.
much as the moment when without anxiety I can seek the joys of domestic life, which appeals
to all my tastes. But this happiness is not for me. What domesticity is there without children?
And can I have any? My wife is ten years older than myself. I must ask your pardon.
It is perhaps ridiculous of me to tell you all this, but I am yielding to the impulse of my heart
which finds pleasure in opening itself out to you. It is perhaps unnecessary to stay. It is perhaps
unnecessary to state that Napoleon was not yielding to the impulse of his heart, but to the
calculations of his ambition, or the demands of his policy. He was broaching the subject,
which he proposed to have followed up by Talleyan, whom he had brought to Erfurt for that
very purpose. He was about to commit these delicate negotiations to that wily diplomat,
who had already made up his mind to betray him. The evening of that same day the Emperor had a long
conversation with Talleyrand regarding the divorce. As reported by Talleyan in his
memoir, he said, My destiny requires it, and the tranquility of France demands it. I have no
successor. Joseph amounts to nothing, and he has only daughters. It is I who must found the dynasty,
and I cannot do so without allying myself to a princess who belongs to one of the great
ruling houses of Europe. The Emperor Alexander has sisters. One of them is of suitable
age. Take the matter up with Romanzov. Tell him that as soon as this Spanish affair is settled,
I will enter into all the Tsar's plans for the partition of Turkey. You will not lack for other
arguments, for I know that you are a partisan of the divorce. The Empress Josephine is also aware
of the fact, I can inform you. Teleran said in reply that he thought it would be better for him
to take the matter up directly with the Tsar instead of his minister, and Napoleon acquiesced.
Tellierin, who well knew the feelings of the mother of Alexander, instead of loyally furthering
the plans of his master, suggested to the Tsar a dilatory policy, which would thwart the plans
of Napoleon without arousing his resentment. The unprincipled minister embraced this
opportunity to begin to weave the plot, which was finally to bring about the fall of the
man he had always secretly detested. During his absence, the Emperor sent Josephine only
three letters, all of them brief and insignificant. In the first, written two days after his
arrival, he expressed his satisfaction with his R. In the second, ten days later, he says,
I have just hunted on the battlefield of Vienna. We took breakfast on the spot where I passed the night
at my bivouac. I attended a ball at Vimar. The Emperor Alexander dances, but I, no, forty years are
forty years. In his last letter which bears no date, he again speaks of his satisfaction with
Alexander and says, If the Tsar wore a woman, I should be in love with him. In spite of his great
genius, Napoleon was the dupe of this young emperor who he thought was his friend. From this
interview he gained nothing except a breathing spell during which he could proceed without
danger of immediate interruption to regulate his affairs in Spain. Between his return from
Erfurt and his departure for Spain, Napoleon spent only ten days with Josephine at Saint-Clu.
During this time, their relations were somewhat strained.
The Emperor appeared embarrassed in the presence of his wife, as though he feared that through
some indiscretion, a report of his matrimonial projects might have reached her ears.
And Josephine, who both desired and feared to know the truth, did not venture to ask any questions.
As usual, she wished to accompany the Emperor to the frontier, and it was almost
by Maine force that he prevented her from entering the carriage which bore him away.
Leaving Saint-Clu on the 29th of October, the emperor reached Bayonne on the 3rd of November.
A month later, he was at the gates of Madrid and the city capitulated the following day.
During the three weeks which he spent at the capital, Napoleon resided at a small country mansion,
Chamartheon, a few miles north of the city. He was constantly occupied with plans for the upbuilding
of the country. He had reinstated his brother on the throne, and if there had been time for the
new institutions to take root, Spain today would be a far more progressive country. In the meantime,
an English army under Sir John Moore had advanced on Borgoes to cut the French line of communications,
and on the 22nd December, the emperor left Madrid with his guard to meet this new offensive.
Moore learned of his danger in time and beat a hasty retreat. When he was at Astarga, on the
first day of January, 18009, Napoleon received a dispatch from his old friend in aide-de-can
La Vallette, telling him of the intrigues of Talleyrand and Foucher with Murat and Caroline and the
armament of Austria. He turned over the pursuit of the English to Né and Sult and started for
Valiadolid. On the 17th of January he set out for Paris, covering the distance of 30 leagues
from Valiadolid to Burgos in the remarkable time of six hours, upon his own horses, arranged
in six relays.
The following day he left this country
which he alone could have conquered,
which he never was to see again,
and which was destined to ruin his empire.
At eight o'clock
on the morning of the 23rd of January,
he was back in the Tullery.
During his absence of twelve weeks,
Napoleon sent Josephine fourteen letters,
some of them brief and insignificant.
The first five, from Marac,
Tolosa, Vittoria,
Burgos, and Aranda,
tell only of his progress and the state of his health.
After this, his letters are longer and more interesting.
To the Empress, Chamartine, 7 December, 1808.
I am in receipt your letter of the 28th November.
I am glad to hear that you are well.
My health is good.
The weather here is like the last half of May at Paris.
It is warm and we have no fire unless the night is cool.
Madrid is tranquil.
All my affairs.
are going well. Adieu, my
amy. To tattois. Napoleon.
Chamartine
10 December, 1808.
My ami, I have your letter.
You tell me that the weather is bad at Paris.
Here we are having the finest in the world.
Tell me, I pray you, what Autance means by her reforms.
They say she is discharging her servants.
Has anyone refused her what she needs?
Send me a word on the subject.
the reforms are not in good taste. Adieu, my ami. All here goes very well, and I pray you take good care of yourself.
Napoleon.
Chamartine, 21 December, 1808. You should have returned to the Tuileri the 12th December.
I hope that you have been satisfied with your apartments. Adieu, my ami, I am well. The weather is
rainy and a little cold. Napoleon.
Chamartine, 22nd, December.
1808 I leave immediately to maneuver the English who appear to have received their
reinforcements and to desire to make their swagger. Fair le cranes. The weather is fine,
my health perfect. Have no anxiety. Napoleon. Beneventy, 31 December, 1808.
My ami, I have been in pursuit of the English for several days, but they flee in terror.
In order not to retard their retreat for a half day, they have basely abandoned
the wreck of the Romana army.
More than 100 baggage wagons
have already been taken.
The weather is very bad.
Adieu, my ami.
Bessier with 10,000 cavalry
is at Astaga.
Happy New Year to everybody.
Napoleon.
Beneventi, 5 January,
1809.
My ami, I am writing only a line.
The English are completely routed.
I have ordered the Duke de Dalmassie,
Sult, to
Pursue them vigorously, lippé in l'erain.
I am well.
The weather is bad.
Adieu, my ami.
Napoleon.
Valio D'olid.
8 January, 1809.
I have your letters of the 23 and 26th December.
I am sorry to hear that you are suffering from your teeth.
I have been here for two days.
The weather is seasonable.
The English are embarking.
I am well.
Adieu, my ami.
I am writing to Artance.
has a daughter. To Taito, Napoleon.
Valio de Lide, 9 January, 1809.
Moustache, a courier, has brought me your letter of the 31 December.
I see, my friend, that you are sad, and that you are very anxious.
Austria will not go to war with me.
If she does, I have 150,000 men in Germany, as many on the Rhine, and 400,000 Germans to meet her.
Russia will not abandon me.
They are mad in Paris.
All goes well.
I shall be in Paris as soon as I think it necessary.
I warn you to beware of apparitions.
One of these fine days at two o'clock in the morning.
But adieu, mon ami.
I am well, and are yours.
Napoleon.
On the afternoon of the 23rd January,
the day of his return to Paris,
all of the ministers and grand officers of the state
called at the Tuileri to pay their homage to the Emperor.
In the presence of this distinguished assembly,
Napoleon severely rebuked Talirin and Foucher for the disgraceful intrigue
which they had carried on during his absence.
This reproof was not the cause of their hostility to the Emperor,
as often stated, but it was the signal for the secret war
which they levied against him from that time on.
During the Campaign of Poland in 1807,
and again during the absence of the Emperor in Spain,
following year, the possibility of his death and its effect on the dynasty were seriously discussed
at Paris. There were well-founded rumors of a project to place Murat on the throne in case
anything happened to Napoleon. Foucher and Taleran were in the plot, and the warmest advocate,
if not the real instigator of the plan, was Napoleon's ambitious sister, Caroline.
In this connection, there is a record in the journal of Stanislas Gerardin of a conversation
which he had was Josephine on the last day of February, 1809,
after his return from Spain.
The Empress said to him,
While you were in Spain, there were some curious rapprochement.
Irreconcilable enemies, Foucher and Talleyrand,
have suddenly become reconciled.
Men who never saw each other have been seen together frequently.
This clique is powerful and braves us.
Fouchet is its soul.
When Murat was given the throne of Naples,
all the journals under the control,
all of the police sang his praises. Foucher said openly that Murat was the only successor of the
emperor, the only one who could inspire Europe with fear, and the only one who enjoyed the confidence
of the army. He wrote a letter to the emperor in which he stated positively that France
did not want any of his brothers as a successor. Fortunately, the eyes of Bonaparte are opened
since his return. The letter of which I speak is in existence. It is in the hands of Minerval,
the Emperor's Secretary.
in spite of the assertions of l'an fray and other historians there is little doubt of the existence of this plot but the austrian menace probably had more weight in determining the emperor to return from spain austria thought that the moment was opportune to attempt to recover her lost possessions
the archduke charles who was in command of the army had made a supreme effort to raise a force capable of meeting napoleon and he had done his work well
late on the twelfth of april napoleon was informed by a semaphore message that the austrian army had crossed the inn and invaded the territory of his ally the king of bavaria at daybreak the next morning accompanied by josephine he started for strasbourg where he arrived in forty-eight hours
he left the empress there and immediately crossed the rhine during the following week in one of the most brilliant operations of his career the emperor won two decisive victories and completely crushed
the Austrian offensive.
Eighteen days later, he was once more
quartered in the palace of Schoenbrun at
Vienna. On the
23rd of April, before Rattisbon,
Napoleon was slightly wounded by
a spent bullet which struck him in the right heel.
This is the only wound
he has ever known to have received,
except a bayonet thrust in the thigh
at the siege of Toulon. But at the time
of the autopsy, after his death at St.
Helena, several scars were found
on his body. This seems
to prove that he was hit on other occasions,
but was successful in concealing the fact.
Josephine remained for several weeks at Strasbourg,
where she was visited by Artans and her sons,
by the Queen of Westphalia,
and the Grand Duchess of Baden.
The story of the campaign is told in several brief letters
from the Emperor.
To the Empress at Strasbourg.
Donovert, 18 April, 18009.
I reached here at 4 o'clock this morning and I am leaving.
Everything is in motion.
There is great activity in the military operations.
Up to this moment, there is no news.
Ends, noon, 6 May, 1809.
I have received your letter.
The ball which touched me did not wound me.
It hardly grazed the tendon of Achilles.
My health is very good.
You have no need for anxiety.
St. Poulton, 9 May, 1809.
Tomorrow I shall be before Vienna.
Just a moment.
month from the day that the Austrians crossed the inn and broke the peace.
My health is good, the weather superb, and the soldiers very gay.
Vienna, 12 May, 1809
I am sending the brother of the Duchess de Montobello to tell you that I am master of
Vienna, and that I'll hear as well. My health is very good.
Vienna, 27 May, 18009.
I am sending a page to inform you that Eugène has joined
me with his entire army, that he has performed perfectly the task that I assigned him,
that he has almost entirely destroyed the force of the enemy which opposed him.
Ebersdorf, 29 May, 1809.
I have been here since yesterday. I am stopped by the river. The bridge has been burned.
I shall cross at midnight. Everything goes as I would desire, that is to say very well.
The Austrians have been struck by a thunderbolt.
it would be impossible for anyone reading the last two letters to imagine that they were written a week after the terrible two days battle of aspern esling in which napoleon received one of the worst reverses in his career
in his next letter he alludes to a visit of ortans and her sons without his permission to the baths of baden and also to the death of his old companion in arms lan who was mortally wounded just at the end of the battle of estling
to the empress at strasbourg a three one may eighteen hundred nine i have your letter of the twenty-six i have written you that you may go to plombierre i do not care to have you go to baden you must not leave france i have ordered the two princes to return to france
i have been much afflicted by the loss of the duke de monta bello who died this morning thus all comes to an end if you can help to console his poor wife
do so vienna nine June 18009 I am glad to learn that you are going to the waters of
plumbeier they will do you good I am well and the weather is very fine I note with pleasure
that Oortons and her son are in France Schoenbrun 16 June 1809 I am sending a page to
announce that the 14th anniversary of Marengo Eugène gained a battle against the Archduke
John and Rabbe in a home.
Hungary, that he has taken three thousand men, several cannon, four flags, and has pursued them
very far on the road to Buddha.
Early in June, Ortans left her mother to go to the baths in the Pyrenees, and Josephine went
to Plombier.
Here she received the news of the great victory of Vagram and of the armistice of Znaim.
On the 13th of July, the emperor was again back at Vienna, where he remained until the
final peace was signed on the 14th of October.
It is rather remarkable to note that, although he had Madame Valesca with him,
his brief letters are more tender than for several years.
In one he says,
Goodbye, my amy, you know my feelings for Josephine.
They are unchangeable.
Two letters written from Vienna in August and one in September are even more notable.
At this time, Josephine had gone from Plombier to Malmaison.
I have heard, he writes on the 26th of August,
that you are fat, fresh and looking very well.
I assure you that Vienna is not an amusing town.
I should much like to be back again in Paris.
Five days later, he says,
I have received no letters from you for several days.
The pleasures of Malmaison, the beautiful hot houses,
the fine gardens, cause the absent to be forgotten.
That is the way with you all, they say.
Finally, on the 25th of September,
I have your letter.
Do not be too sure.
I warn you to look after yourself well at night.
For one of these early ones you will hear a great noise.
From Munich on the 21st and 22nd October, 1809,
the Emperor sent Josephine the last letters he wrote during the campaign of Vagram,
the last also, which she was to receive from him before the divorce.
To the Empress at Malmaison.
Nymphenburg, near Munich, 21st October 18009.
I have been here since yesterday in good health.
I do not expect to start tomorrow.
I shall stop a day at Stuttgart.
You will be notified 24 hours in advance of my arrival at Fontainebleau.
It will be a treat for me to see you again, and I await the moment with impatience.
I embrace you.
Ever yours?
Napoleon
Munich, 22 October, 1809.
My ami, I start in an hour.
I shall arrive.
at Fontainebleau the 26 or 27th.
You can go there with some ladies.
Napoleon
End of chapters 25 and 26.
Chapters 27 and 28
of Napoleon and Josephine
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
27.
1809.
Return of the Emperor.
The Emperor reached Fontainebleau on his return
from Vienna at nine o'clock on the morning of the 26 October.
He had traveled with such rapidity that he arrived a day sooner than he was expected,
and found no one to receive him except the concierge.
To pass away the time, he inspected the new apartments in the chateau,
which he had had furnished with great magnificence.
A little later, Campeserese appeared in advance of the other courtiers.
The failure of the Empress to meet him, which was in no way her fault,
seemed to have put Napoleon in a very bad humor,
and he openly declared to the arch-chancellor his fixed intention of repudiating Josephine
and espousing either a Russian or an Austrian princess.
Campeserese, who was devoted to the Empress, ventured some timid and respectful remonstrances,
but he was immediately silenced.
At this time, Napoleon was truly the spoiled child of fortune.
More absolute and more imperious than ever,
he no longer allowed even a suggestion from his family or his ministers.
Everyone obeyed and kept silent.
In the words of Monsieur Tierre,
his all-powerful nature had completely blossomed out,
and it was to fade away like his fortune,
for nothing stand still.
Next came Foucher,
and the wily minister of police
was not slow to take advantage of the Emperor's feeling
to make an indirect attack on the absent Josephine.
There is not one of your marshals, he said,
who is not considering how to dispose of your estate
if we have the misfortune to lose you.
It is a case of Alexander's lieutenants eager for their kingdoms.
After these conversations with his ministers,
the Emperor went to his library and began to write.
Late in the afternoon, he heard the noise of a carriage
arriving in the court and rushed downstairs.
But it was not the Empress, and he returned to his work.
An hour later, Josephine finally arrived.
She had made all possible haste to come from St. Clu
as soon as she was informed of the return of the Emperor.
seeing that Napoleon did not come to meet her with a heavy heart she mounted the stairway
and entered the library where she found Napoleon seated at his writing-table.
Ah, there you are at last, he exclaimed.
You did well to come, for I was about to leave for St. Clu.
At this brutal welcome after a separation of six months, the eyes of Josephine filled with tears
and she swayed as though she were about to fall.
Napoleon at once relented, took her in his arms and tendered.
embraced her. Josephine then went to her apartment to change her
toilet for dinner. An hour and a half later she reappeared
resplendent in a new gown which became her marvellously.
To avoid the embarrassment of a tte-a-tete-te meal, the Emperor invited
two of his ministers who were working with him to dine with them. Forgetting his
bad humor he showed himself quite amiable. But the evening
was not to end without another rude shock to Josephine.
On going to her rooms for the night,
she discovered for the first time that, during the recent alterations to the chateau,
the inner door which communicated with the Emperor's suite had been closed.
This was a significant fact which she did not fail to appreciate.
She did not dare to ask the Emperor for an explanation,
but the next morning she questioned Monsieur de Boise the prefect of the palace.
He professed his ignorance of the change, and Josephine said,
You may be sure that there is some mystery attached to it.
To a woman of her intelligence, however, there was very little mystery about the matter.
She fully understood that the divorce was now only a question of days.
Yet when they left Fontainebleau for Paris on the 14th of November, the emperor had not spoken,
and Josephine again began to hope against hope.
At Paris there was soon a regular assembly of crowned heads.
The king of Saxony was already there, and a few days later there arrived the kings of Naples,
Westphalia, and Holland,
and the princes of the Confederation of the Rhine.
Sigur, the grand master of the ceremonies,
had difficulty in finding suitable quarters
for so many exalted personages,
and complained that he was troubled by an Embarrad de Rois.
It was surely an irony of fate
that the imperial court had never been
so brilliant and so attractive
as when the gracious Josephine was about to leave it forever.
Napoleon, usually so prompt
to put his plans into execution,
did not seem to be able to make up his mind
to sever finally the tie which pout him to the woman who, for fourteen years, had been associated
with his destiny, and who recalled the most brilliant days of his youth and his glory.
Monsieur de Bousset draws this sketch of Josephine at the time of the divorce.
The Empress was forty-six years old. No woman could have more grace of manner and bearing.
Her eyes were enchanting, her smile full of charm, her voice of extreme softness, her form
noble, supple, perfect. Her toilette. Her toilette.
always elegant and imperfect taste,
made her appear much younger than she really was.
But all this was as nothing beside the goodness of her heart.
Her spirit was amiable.
Never did she wound the self-love of anyone.
Never had she anything disagreeable to say.
Her disposition was always even and placid.
Devoted to Napoleon,
she communicated to him without his perceiving it her kindness and goodness.
A still more intimate observer, Mademoiselle Avriand gives us,
another view of Josephine at this same time.
She says,
The Empress, constantly in tears, endeavored to hide them from the persons around her.
But it did not take a very discerning eye to perceive that her happiness was destroyed forever,
for she lived in a state of continual agitation.
It is really impossible for me to say whether she was rendered more unhappy
by the blow she received than by all the preliminaries of the event itself,
as notwithstanding the conviction of her future.
She still preserved, if not hope, at least a vague feeling of uncertainty,
every time that a minister or a grand dignitary of the empire came to see her,
she pressed him with indirect questions, tormented equally by the desire to know her fate
and the fear to learn it.
Finally, on the last day of November, Napoleon found the courage to break the fatal news.
What a scene for a tragedy!
He said himself in speaking later of the events of that evening at the Tuileries.
Josephine dined alone with the Emperor in a room adjoining his chamber on the first floor.
She wore a large white hat which partly concealed her face.
Not a word was spoken, and neither of them touched the courses which were placed before them,
and then silently removed.
After dinner they went into the salon on the other side of the palace between the throne room and the gallery of Diana.
After a moment of silence, Napoleon began to speak.
He said that the safety of the Empire demanded,
a momentous resolution, and that he counted on all of her courage and devotion to consent to a step
upon which he himself, with the greatest reluctance, had decided, the dissolution of their marriage.
Josephine made no reply. She burst into tears and then fell apparently in a dead faint upon the
floor. Greatly agitated, the emperor opened the door of the salon and called Monsieur de Beauce,
who was on duty that evening. After closing the door, Napoleon asked the prefect if he was
strong enough to lift the Empress and carry her by the interior staircase to her apartment on the ground
floor. Boet, a large stout man, took Josephine in his arms and followed Napoleon, who led the way
holding a candle in his hand. When the staircase was reached, Boet said that it was too narrow for him
to descend with such a burden. The Emperor thereupon called an attendant, gave him the candle,
and told him to light the way. Then he relieved Bosef of the Empress's legs, allowing him to
support her body. In this manner, the dissent was begun, Napoleon walking backwards and
Bosse following, supporting Josephine with his arms around her waist, and her head resting on his
shoulder. Suddenly, he heard her voice whispering to him softly,
"'Take care. You hurt me. You are holding me too tight.'
The descent was finished without other incidents, and Josephine, still in a swoon, was placed
upon a sofa, and her maids called. The Emperor then left her.
their care and withdrew from the room with his eyes filled with tears and every sign of the deepest
agitation. It would be difficult to believe this little episode of the stairway if the story
were not related by such a devoted servant of the Empress as Monsieur de Beauce. If there is anything
certain in this world, it is that Napoleon, from the first always loved Josephine, with a devotion
which far exceeded her attachment for him, and that he continued to love her until his life's end.
yet history will never forgive him for finally allowing his duty to the empire to overcome his affections.
It is easy to condemn his action as heartless or as dictated by ambition, but nothing is gained by calling names.
If it were not for the fantastic connection which has been imagined between the fortunes of Napoleon and the guiding star of his life,
we should not have heard so much in condemnation of his divorce, which certainly was dictated by the most powerful reasons of state.
the case is not altered by the fact that his second marriage was a dismal failure or as he himself once expressed it that the austrian alliance was an abyss covered with flowers
it is a striking instance of the shortness of human foresight that a step taken to assure the safety of the empire was to be the principal cause of its fall in his trouble after this trying scene with josephine napoleon opened up his heart to bossette
in a voice broken by emotion he said the interests of france and of my dynasty have forced my heart the divorce has become for me a rigorous duty i am all the more afflicted by the scene which i have just had with josephine because for three days she must have known through otans the unfortunate obligation which condemns me to seek a separation from her
i pity her from the bottom of my heart i thought that she had more character and i was not prepared for the manifestation of her grief after each sentence he paused to catch his breath and displayed every sign of the most poignant emotion
then he sent for his personal physician corvissar also for ortense fuchy and cambyserese before ascending to his own apartment he went again to see josephine whom he found
calm and more resigned. He received the two ministers on their arrival, and afterwards had a long
talk with Ottein's. The interview with the Queen was very painful. He began in a tone of
simulated harshness. "'My decision is made,' he said. "'Neither tears nor cries will affect a resolution
which has become unavoidable, a resolution absolutely necessary for the safety of the empire.'
"'Sire,' replied Octance, "'you will have neither tears nor cries, "'will have neither tears nor
cries. The Empress will not fail to submit to your wishes, and to descend from the throne as she
mounted it by your will. Her children, content to renounce the granders which have not
made them happy, will willingly consecrate their lives to consoling the best and most tender of mothers.
That cannot be, cried Napoleon, much moved by her words. Such an action would raise the
suspicion of a veiled misunderstanding, either on your part towards me, or on my part towards your
mother and her family.
In our exile, continued Ortense,
we shall never forget all that we owe to the emperor.
Ah, you will abandon me, cried the emperor, bursting into tears.
You, you, to whom I have been a father.
No, you cannot do that.
You will remain with me.
The future of your children demands it.
No matter how great for us all is this cruel sacrifice,
it must be carried out with the dignity imposed by circumstances.
The emperor then outlined to Artans' plans for Josephine's future.
Palaces, Chateau, a magnificent income, the first rank after the reigning empress.
Everything possible was to be done to dissemble the change in her situation which would result from the divorce.
He then sent Artans to see her mother and try to reconcile her.
The night which followed was one of the saddest in the life.
of Napoleon. Several times he arose and descended to inform himself personally of the condition
of Josephine. He did not sleep at all. In the morning when Mademoiselle Abrion came, Josephine called to her
to approach the bed and told her confidentially what had occurred. Seeing her air of consternation,
Josephine at once began to excuse the emperor saying, He is in despair over our separation.
He also cried and assured me that it was the greatest sacrifice he could make for France.
Yes, I well know that he must have an heir for his glory, a child who will consolidate his empire.
He has told Orteans that he will always be the same for her and Ergen, and that he will often come to me in my retreat.
He has sworn that he will never compel me to leave France.
He allows me to live at Malmaison.
He wishes me always to enjoy a position of consideration and that I shall have an adequate income.
At that time there were no daily.
papers such as we have today, all eager for news. But the journals would not have ventured to publish
the reports even if rumors of the coming event had leaked out. The secret seems to have been well
kept by the few persons who knew it, and the Empress appeared as usual at several functions during
the first two weeks of December. At the fate of this trying fortnight, Napoleon was in public
even more attentive to Josephine than usual. On the first day of December, the Emperor and Empress went
to Malmaison where a fight was given in honor of the King of Saxony, at which were present,
the King of Naples, Holland, and Vertonburg, who arrived in Paris that day.
An elaborate program had been arranged to celebrate the double anniversary of the coronation
and the victory of Austerlitz, as well as the conclusion of the Treaty of Vienna.
The festivals were to be prolonged over several days. On the third in the morning, there was
a te deum at Notre Dame. In the afternoon, the formal opening of the
all legislative, and in the evening a state dinner at the Tuilerie.
On the fourth, in the morning there was a grand review in the court of the Tuileries,
and in the evening the emperor and empress were present at a fight given at the Hotel
de Ville in honor of the coronation.
For this occasion, the court of the Hotel de Ville had been transformed into an enormous
ballroom.
The kings and queens danced in the quadrille d'honour, after which the emperor traversed the room
and addressed a few courteous words to many of the ladies present.
On the seventh there was a spectacle at the Tuileries, but this time the Empress did not appear.
It was given out that she was suffering from a migraine.
Poor Josephine had gone to the limits of her endurance.
She was also absent from the side of the Emperor,
when on the 8th he received in the throne room a deputation of the Car Legislative.
In his reply to the address, the Emperor used a phrase which seemed to presage the coming event.
We shall always know how,
my family and myself, to sacrifice even our dearest affections to the interests and the welfare of
this great nation. On the 11th, Josephine appeared in public with Napoleon for the last time,
had a fate given at the chateau of Grosbois by Marsal Verthier, Prince de Neuf Chattel, and de Vagram.
This fine residence had belonged before the revolution to the Comte de Provence, and later to Baras
and Morro. The kings and princes then in Paris, and a large part of the court,
court were present. There was a hunt during the day followed in the evening by a dinner,
a spectacle and a ball. The evening was marred by a most unfortunate contretem.
Bertie had arranged to entertain his guests with a comedy played by Brunet, one of the most
popular actors of the day. Brunet, who was entirely ignorant of the coming event,
chose from his repertoire, a very droll little play which turned on the subject of divorce.
Imagine the embarrassment, the stupefing.
faction of poor Bertier and the feelings of Napoleon and Josephine when the actor announced
his intention of securing a divorce, for have ancestors, followed by a change of mind with the sage
remark, I know what my wife is, I do not know what the one I take may be like.
This scene of comedy in the drama of divorce was worthy of the pen of a Shakespeare.
Truth is stranger than fiction.
28, 1809.
The divorce
Prince Eugène arrived in Paris
on the 8th of December
At the time he left Milan
he was still ignorant of the reasons for his summons
but Ortense, by order of the emperor,
met him at Nemour, a few miles south of Fontainebleau
and broke the sad news.
Josephine had looked forward to his arrival
with the hope that he might turn the emperor
from his purpose even at the last moment,
but this illusion was soon dissipated.
The position of Eugène was very difficult,
He was devoted to his mother, but he owed everything to the emperor.
It was not easy to reconcile his feeling of filial tenderness with the respect and the gratitude which bound him to Napoleon.
At his first interview he saw that the divorce was no longer an open question,
and that it would be useless for him to raise any objections.
He demanded the permission of the emperor to retire to private life,
saying that he could no longer hold the office of Viceroy when his mother had ceased to be empress,
to which the emperor replied,
Do you not realize how imperious are the reasons which force me to take this step?
If heaven grants me the object of my dearest hopes,
the son so necessary to me who will take my place by his side when I am absent?
Who will be to him a father if I die?
Who will bring him up?
Who will make a man of him?
In order to settle the matter definitely without any further delay,
Ejean asked the emperor to consent to a meeting with Josephine,
where in his presence they could have a final explanation.
Napoleon agreed, and the conference was held that same evening.
The Emperor stated that the divorce was an absolute necessity for the stability of the empire.
Josephine, in turn, said that this consideration should outweigh any others,
and that she was ready to make the sacrifice for her country.
Then she added, bursting into tears,
As soon as we are separated, my children will be forgotten.
make Eugène king of Italy
Eugène interrupted her with the indignant words
No, I pray you leave me out of the question
Your son does not wish for a crown
Which would be the price of your separation
If you bow to the wishes of the Emperor
It is of you alone that he must think
Napoleon was touched
That is Eugène's true heart
He said he does well to trust to my affection
Friday the 15th of December 18009
was the day chosen by the Emperor
for the dissolution of his civil marriage.
The family council
assembled at 9 o'clock in the evening
at the Tuileries in the salon of the Emperor
on the first floor
between the throne room
and the Gallery of Diana.
All the members of the family
were present except Joseph
who was in Spain,
Lucien who was still in disgrace,
and Elisa who was expecting a child.
But Madame Mare, Louis,
Jerome and his wife,
Pauline,
Caroline and her husband Murat were there
together with Eugène and his sister as representatives of the Boarnet.
Cambeseres, the arch-chancellor and Renaud the Secretary of State were also present.
The palace was brilliantly illuminated, as on days of fete, and the whole imperial family was in full court dress.
Josephine wore a perfectly plain white robe with no jewels.
Although very pale, she seemed calmer than either Eugène or Orthans, who were much agitated.
Around the room were arranged the seat.
for the members of the family in due order of precedence.
Armchairs for the Emperor, Empress, and Madame Mare,
chairs for the Kings and Queens, and Stools for the Others.
When all had taken their places, the Emperor arose and began to read this address.
The policy of my monarchy, the interest and the needs of my people,
which have constantly guided my actions, demand that after myself,
I leave to children, heirs of my love for my people,
this throne upon which providence has placed me. Nevertheless, for several years past, I have lost the hope of having children of my marriage with my well-loved spouse the Empress Josephine. It is this which has led me to sacrifice the dearest affection of my heart, to listen only to the welfare of the state, and to desire the dissolution of our marriage. Arrived at the age of forty years, I can conceive the hope of living long enough to bring up in my spirit and my thought.
the children whom it may please Providence to give me.
God knows how much such a resolution has cost my heart,
but there is no sacrifice above my courage,
when it is proved to me that it is for the benefit of France.
The address of the Emperor had been carefully prepared and written out in advance,
but departing now from the text he continued,
far from ever having had to complain,
I can, on the contrary, only rejoice over the affection and tenderness of my well-loved spouse.
She has graced
fifteen years of my life,
and the memory of this will remain
ever stamped upon my heart.
She was crowned by my hand.
I desire that she shall keep
the rank and title of crowned empress,
but above all,
that she shall never doubt my feelings,
and that she shall have me always
as her best and dearest friend.
It was now the turn of Josephine to speak.
She also had modified
the terms of the declaration prepared
for her, which by its excess of adulation would have taken from her lips a tone of irony.
The words which she used were well chosen and apparently her own, as they were written in her
clear hand upon her usual paper. Once more she had given proof of that tact which was one of her
graces and her charms. But she had only read a few sentences when her voice became choked with
tears, and she handed the paper to Renaud, who continued the discourse. With the permission of our
August and dear spouse, I declare that, since I have no hope of bearing children, who can
satisfy the requirements of his policy and the interests of France, it is my pleasure to give
him the greatest proof of attachment and devotion which was ever given on earth. I owe all to
his bounty. It was his hand which crowned me, and seated me on this throne. I have received
nothing but proofs of affection and love from the French people. I am recognizing all this, I
believe, in consenting to the dissolution of a marriage which is now an obstacle to the welfare of
France, and deprives her of the good fortune of being ruled one day by the descendants of a great
man, plainly raised up by Providence, to remove the ill effects of a terrible revolution,
and to set up again the altar, the throne, and the social order.
But the dissolution of my marriage will make no change in the sentiments of my heart.
The Emperor will always have in me his best friend.
i know how much this act which is made necessary by his policy and by such great interests has wounded his heart but we shall win glory both of us by the sacrifice which we have made in the interests of our country
not only her children eugen and ortense but even the hostile bonaparts were moved by these eloquent and touching words the meeting ended with the signature by each member of the imperial family of the document prepared by cambyserese the emperor then conducted josephine
to her apartment, where he left her after a tender embrace.
But the night was not to end for Napoleon
without one more painful scene.
He had hardly retired when the door opened and Josephine appeared.
She threw herself into his arms, and Napoleon pressed her to his heart, saying,
Come, my good Josephine, be more reasonable.
Courage, courage, I shall always be thy friend.
The following day, Josephine was to leave the Tuileries forever.
after a sleepless night she was occupied from early morning with her preparations for departure.
Her children were with her, but Eugène was obliged to leave her at eleven o'clock for the meeting of the Senate,
where the decree was to be passed, annulling the imperial marriage.
It was the first appearance of the Viceroy in his quality of senator.
After taking his oath of office, he spoke in support of the resolution offered by Count Reignot saying,
I think that it is my duty under the present circumstances to make plain the sentiment
by which my family is animated.
My mother, my sister, and myself,
we owe everything to the emperor.
To us he has been a real father.
At all times he will find in us
devoted children and submissive subjects.
It is important for the welfare of France
that the founder of this fourth dynasty
shall grow old surrounded by direct heirs,
who shall be our guarantee
as a pledge of the country's glory.
When my mother was crowned
before the whole nation
by the hands of her August spouse,
she contracted the obligation to sacrifice all her affections to the interests of France.
She has filled this first of her duties with courage, nobility, and dignity.
Of the 87 senators present, all but seven voted in favor of the decree with four blank bulletins.
Attention was called to the fact, often forgotten, that no less than 13 of the predecessors of Napoleon upon the throne of France
had been constrained to dissolve their marriage bonds, and among the
them four of the monarchs the most admired and loved by the people.
Charles Le Magne, Philippe Augustus, Louis XVI, and Henry IV.
The first act of the program, the annulment of the civil marriage had been carried out,
and no obstacle had been encountered. All of the actors had filled their roles better
than anyone could have expected. There remained the religious marriage to dissolve,
a very necessary step if the emperor were to espouse a Catholic princess.
While the chamber of the Senate was still echoing with the adulation of the address unanimously voted to her by the members, the Empress was leaving the Tuileries.
It had been arranged that during the course of the day, Josephine should go to Malmaison, which in the future was to be her principal residence, while the emperor was to depart for the Trianon.
He was to leave first at four o'clock in the afternoon.
When his carriage was announced, he took his hat, called to his secretary, Minerval, to follow him,
and rapidly descended the private staircase which led to the apartment of josephine in the ritechouss on the entrance of the emperor josephine who was awaiting him alone threw herself into his arms and napoleon tenderly embraced her
then she fainted and minneval rang for her attendance as soon as napoleon saw that she was recovering consciousness to avoid a prolongation of the painful scene he took his departure
enjoining upon his secretary not to leave the empress he passed through the salons on the ground floor to the court and entered his carriage which bore him away to versailles when josephine perceived that the emperor had left she seized the hands of m de minerval and exclaimed tell the emperor not
to forget me assure him of my undying affection promise me to send me news of him as soon as you arrive at the trianon and see that he writes me it was now the turn of josephine to leave
all the members of the palace household had gathered in the vestibule to salute the empress as she departed she was loved and regretted by all and many eyes were filled with tears to her they had always gone in their troubles when there was a favor to ask or a fault to be pardoned
there was not one who did not regard the good empress as a guardian angel for the last time josephine enters her carriage at the door of the tuileries and leaves this abode of ten years where she has spent so many happy days and also endured so many hours of anguish
conbeserese who had the matter in charge found great and unexpected difficulties in procuring the annulment of the religious marriage and a whole month passed before the decree was published
the ground taken was that the emperor had been constrained that his consent had been neither voluntary nor free and that under the circumstances the marriage was null and void the facts could not be disputed but matrimonial cases of sovereigns were by usage reserved for the pope it was before the supreme
pontiff that the cases of Louis X12 and Henry IV had been taken.
Now the domains of the church had been annexed to the empire, and Napoleon had been excommunicated
by the Pope who was at present his prisoner. Other means must therefore be sought for the
dissolution of the marriage. The various steps are related in detail by Monsieur Masson,
to whom the curious reader is referred. Suffice it here to state that on the 14th of January,
1810, the Monitare, announced to France and to the entire world.
the rupture of the spiritual bond which united his majesty the emperor Napoleon and her majesty the empress Josephine.
For several weeks, the divorce was naturally the one topic of discussion in Paris.
Josephine was an object of universal sympathy, and on descending from the throne as if she were already dead,
she was accorded all the virtues. In the army, the divorce was generally regretted.
With the soldiers she had long been legendary, and many of the officers also attrified.
attributed to her a beneficent effect upon the fortunes of Napoleon.
When the hour of defeat sounded during the terrible retreat from Moscow,
more than one of the old Grignor were heard to exclaim,
the little corporal should never have given up La Vieille, the old woman.
She brought good fortune to him and to us, too.
It is doubtful if Josephine would have been entirely pleased with this compliment
if she had overheard it.
Binyu in his memoir also speaks of the general book.
belief that Josephine brought good luck to her husband.
I repeated it and I even almost believed it, he writes,
that Josephine was the good fortune of the emperor and consequently of France,
and that if she were ever separated from her husband,
she would carry that fortune with her.
Josephine, with her Creole tendency to superstition, probably believed it,
and certainly tried to make Napoleon believe it.
Later on, when overcome by reverses and betrayals, he was heard to say,
She was right. Our separation has brought me misfortune.
End of chapters 27 and 28.
Chapters 29 and 30 of Napoleon and Josephine,
The Rise of the Empire by Walter Gear.
This Libre-Fox recording is in the public domain.
29.
1809 to 1810.
Josephine at Manmaison.
In fixing the diary of Josephine, the end of Josephine,
emperor had not been content with the amount of two million francs granted her under the
constitution of the empire from the state treasury. By decree, he assured her from the crown
treasury an additional allowance of one million francs. By a second decree, he gave her for life
the use of the Palais de L'Illise. And by a third sovereign act, he renounced in her favor
all his title and interest in Malmaison. By these acts, the emperor had more than redeemed his
promise to assure her future. In parents,
In Paris, Josephine had for her residence the most sumptuous and the most attractive of the imperial palaces,
and at the gates of the capital, a chateau of her own choice furnished to suit her own taste.
So far from being a drain on her resources, the woods and lands of Mademoiso in 1809 brought in a net revenue which exceeded by 50% the cost of its upkeep.
Aside from her magnificent allowance of three millions and her valuable collection of jewels, however, Josephine had no private fortune.
napoleon knew by experience that the empress must have some debts and he now demanded a detailed statement of the amounts she was forced to admit that these had accumulated since the last previous liquidation three years before and now reached a total of nearly two millions
after a careful examination of the accounts the amount was reduced by around half million and the balance was paid by the emperor with the understanding that one-half the sum should be deducted from her allowance for each of the two following years
By this arrangement, the income of the Empress was reduced to a little more than two millions for the first two years.
Having paid her debts and provided her with an ample allowance,
Napoleon now arranged a careful budget for Josephine's expenses in the future,
but his past experience with her should have taught him how useless it was to try to curb her mania for spending.
Josephine arrived at Malmaison after the close of the short December day under a cold, penetrating rain.
She was accompanied by Eugène and Ortense,
who did their best to cheer and console their mother in her new situation.
The disposition shown by some members of her household to desert her
was checked by the emperor,
who gave express orders that they were all to continue their services
until the end of the year.
The first day at Man Maison was sad and depressing.
The rain continued to fall without ceasing.
In the morning, Josephine was constantly in tears,
provoked by the sight of,
the places where she had lived so long with the emperor at an early hour napoleon sent one of his officers from the trianon in search of news he tells me napoleon writes that since you are at malmaison your courage has failed you
nevertheless the place is full of souvenirs of our affections which can never change at least on my part i am very anxious to see you but i must be sure that you are strong and not weak i am also a little weak myself and a little weak myself and
and that pains me much.
At the Triano, the emperor was surrounded by Pauline and her friends
who did their best to amuse him and distract his thoughts.
It was impossible to walk or drive or hunt in the rain.
The only recourse was a game of cards of which Napoleon soon tired.
He ordered his carriage and drove rapidly to the Tuileries.
On his way back in the afternoon, he stopped to visit Josephine at Malmaison.
Between the showers they walked in the park together as of old.
but he only shook her hand when he came and went and did not kiss her.
On his return to the trianon he wrote her.
8 p.m. 17 December, 1809.
My ami, I found you today weaker than you should have been.
You have shown courage and you must find enough to sustain you.
You must not allow yourself to lapse into a fatal melancholy.
You must become content and above all guard your health, which is so precious to me.
if you are attached to me and you love me, you must bear yourself with strength and become happy.
You cannot doubt my constant and tender friendship, and you little know all my regard for you
if you can imagine that I can be happy if you are not, and contented if you are not tranquil.
Adieu, my friend, sleep well. Think that I wish it. Napoleon.
The second day at Malmeson passed in much the same way. The rain continued with a high wind,
and it was impossible for Josephine to seek distraction by walking in the park.
Eugène's efforts to cheer her up with a forced gaiety were of no avail.
After Dijané, there were many callers.
With every new visitor who came to pay his respects or express his regrets,
there was a new flood of tears.
But in her grief, Josephine displays her usual tact.
Not a word de tro, not a harsh complaint, falls from her lips.
She is really as sweet as an angel.
At Paris, the reports of her attitude produced an excellent effect.
Everyone pitied her and admired her courage and resignation.
On the eighteenth, the emperor in the rain hunted in the forest of Saint-Germain,
and sent no less than three times to demand news of Josephine.
The following day before departing for the hunt,
he sent Savarie to see the empress.
Not content with writing and receiving her letters,
he wished to have the report of a person in whom he had entire confidence.
On his return he found a letter from Josephine and immediately wrote her.
7 p.m. 19 December, 1809.
I have your letter, my friend.
Savarie tells me that you are constantly crying.
That is not right.
I hope that you have been able to take a walk today.
I have sent you some of my bag.
I will come to see you when you assure me that you are reasonable
and that your courage has got the upper hand.
"'Tomorrow I have the ministers here all day.
"'Adieu, my ami.
"'I, too, am melancholy today.
"'I want to hear that you are satisfied
"'and to learn of your self-possession.
"'Sleep well. Napoleon.'
"'The following day the Emperor wanted to visit her,
"'but he is very busy and a little indisposed.
"'The weather also is damp and unhealthy.
"'But during the day the sun comes out,
"'and at night he writes again,
"'as the day has been done.
fine, I hope that you have been out to see your plants. I have only been out for a short time at
three o'clock this afternoon to shoot some hairs. Josephine had indeed been out for the first time.
Madame de Ré Muzza, who had constituted herself Josephine's moral and physical director,
had persuaded the Empress to take some exercise, thinking that a little fatigue might repose her mind.
As Monsieur Masson well remarks, if Josephine had been willing to travel for a time,
To go to Malin or Rome, she might little by little have lessened the pain of her downfall.
But so near to Paris and the Triano at every moment the same feelings are renewed.
A note or some attention from the Emperor, a face familiar at the Tuileries, a page,
a servant, a soldier, all furnish an occasion for a new outbreak.
The Emperor himself was largely responsible for this state of affairs.
Through pity for Josephine, also from weakness on his own part, he had not commenced.
her to go away, and in thus prolonging the agony of the separation he was suffering as much as
the Empress from being so near and yet so far. Madame de Remusat, taking advantage of the fact
that her husband was on duty at Triannon wrote him to, hint to the Emperor that he should
write the Empress in such a manner as to encourage her, and not in the evening, for his letters
give her nights of anguish, also to moderate in his letters his expressions of regret and grief.
The Emperor evidently took this advice in good part, for his future letters were more manly.
On the 23rd December he wrote,
I should have come to see you today, but for the arrival of the King of Bavaria.
I hope to see you tomorrow, and to find you gay and self-possessed.
He visited her as promised, but although affectionate and tender in his manner,
he did not kiss, Josephine, and was not alone with her a moment.
The following day was Christmas, and he,
invited Josephine and Ortense to visit him at Triano.
He kept them for dinner, and according to Eugen, who was also present, he was very good and very
amiable to her, and she seemed to feel much better.
The next morning the Emperor wrote,
I retired last night as soon as you left. I want to know that you are gay.
I will come to see you during the week. I have received your letters which I will read in
my carriage. In fact, he was returning to the Tuileries after an absence of
ten days, and this was another trial for him and for Josephine.
The day after his arrival, he writes,
I was much bored at seeing the Tuileries again.
This large palace seemed empty to me, and I find myself very lonesome in it.
The same evening he writes again,
I'm much desired to go to Malmaison, but you must be strong and calm.
He adds, I am going to dine all alone.
In other letters written during the last week in
December, the emperor promises Josephine to come to see her tomorrow. But one day he is retained
by the council until eight o'clock, at which hour he dines alone. The next day, Sunday, there is a
grand review of the old guard in the court of the Tullery, and he is unable to come, after Mass, as he
had proposed. Napoleon begins to find Manmaison too far away for frequent visits in midwinter,
and, wearied of his lonely dinners he conceives the idea of having her nearer him in Paris.
But there is no abode vacant.
He had given her the Elysee for a townhouse,
but after the departure of the King of Saxony,
the Murat had at once taken possession on the 17th of December.
Their stay was supposed to be only temporary,
but Caroline found the palace so comfortable
and was so delighted to keep Josephine out
that she planned to prolong her occupancy as much as possible
and sent out invitations for a masked ball and other entertainments.
However, the palace was formally promul
Josephine for the first week in January, and she took good care to have the promise renewed by
the Emperor when he came, although ill, to wish her a happy New Year. But Josephine wished not only
to move to the Elis, but to assure her continued occupancy of the palace, and she now made a move
which has often puzzled her biographers. On the first day of January, 1810, she sent an invitation
to Madame de Metternich, the wife of the former Austrian ambassador, to visit her at Malmaison.
much surprised at this summons the lady came on the following day in the salon she found eugen who seemed to expect her and in a few minutes ortans entered madame de metternich was almost stupefied when artans greeted her with the words
you know madame that we are all austrians at heart but you would never imagine that my mother has had the courage to advise the emperor to ask for the hand of your arch-touches before madame de metternich had time to recover from her astonishment josephine herself
appeared. I have a project, she said, which occupies me exclusively, the success of which
alone gives me hope that the sacrifice I have just made will not be entirely lost. This is
that the Emperor shall marry your Archduchess. I spoke of the matter to him yesterday,
and he replied that his decision was not yet entirely made, but I am certain that it would be
if he were sure of being accepted by you. Madame de Metternish replied that personally she
should regard such an alliance as a great peace of good fortune. But with the thought of Marie Antoinette
in her mind, she could not refrain from adding that it might be painful for an Austrian archduchess
to come to reside in France. Josephine continued, We must endeavor to arrange all this. You must
make your emperor see that his ruin and that of his country are certain if he does not consent,
and that it is the only means of preventing the emperor from creating a schism with the Holy See.
Josephine concluded by saying that the emperor was coming to breakfast with her
and that she would again speak to him on the subject.
At that time, Josephine had no connections with the Russian court
and no acquaintance with the Tsar Alexander, who later was so devoted to her.
She felt that on that side she had nothing to hope and everything to fear,
but her feeling for Austria was entirely different.
Since the time of her first visit to Italy in 1796,
she had been on very friendly terms with the Archduke Ferdinand, the brother of the Emperor.
After the peace of Campo Formio, she had received from the Emperor himself handsome presence
in recognition of the friendly feelings which animated her.
She had always been on confidential terms also with Metternich.
She felt sure, therefore, that her Austrian connections would never fail her.
This is the explanation of what would seem otherwise a very strange move on her part.
Metternish, who had recently been recalled to Vienna to take the portfolio of foreign affairs,
wrote his wife at Paris in reply to her communication regarding Josephine's project.
This princess has recently given proofs of a force of character which must greatly increase the feeling of veneration,
with which not only France but all Europe has long regarded her.
In the meantime, the emperor does not fail in his attentions to his former wife.
Every day that he cannot visit her, he sends her a letter.
he is interested in all her acts he is rejoiced if she takes a walk or is diverted in any way the first week in january after a long call the previous day he writes sunday eight p m seven january eighteen ten
it gave me very great pleasure to see you yesterday i realize what a charm your company has for me i have worked to-day with estev i have granted one hundred thousand francs for eighteen ten for the extraordinary expense
of Malmaison. You can therefore plant as much as you please. You will employ this sum as you wish.
I have charged Esteve to remit 200,000 francs also as soon as the contract for the Julien House is
closed. I have ordered that your set of rubies be settled for as soon as they are appraised by the
administration, as I do not wish any robbery by the jewelers. All that costs me 400,000 francs.
I have ordered that the million do you from the civil list for a
shall be held at the disposal of your man of affairs to pay your debts.
You should find in the armoire at Malmaison, five to six hundred thousand francs.
You can take them to pay for your silver and linen.
I have commanded for you a very handsome set of porcelain.
They will take your orders that it may be very fine.
Napoleon.
During the first month that Josephine was at Malmaison,
the emperor wrote her every day or two and went to see her several times a week.
after that both his letters and his cause became more and more infrequent he was gradually becoming accustomed to his lonely dinners and his solitary nights josephine for her part was daily getting more and more bored at malmaison and anxious to return to paris
she had napoleon's promise and she did not hesitate to remind him of it on the twenty eighth of january he writes i have had your belongings here arranged and given orders to take everything to the elizet
two days later he says i shall be pleased to know that you are at the elizier and very happy to see you oftener for you know how much i love you but josephine began to have her doubts there were rumors of exile of a prohibition of her residence in paris
she took alarm and sent ergen to see the emperor napoleon defended himself in two letters written probably on the sixth and tenth of february tuesday noon six february eighteen ten
i learned that you are worried that is all wrong you are without confidence in me and are affected by all the reports which are noised around this shows your ignorance of me josephine
i am vexed with you and if i do not learn that you are gay and contented i shall go and scold you well adieu mon ami napoleon saturday six p m ten february eighteen ten
i have told eugen that you preferred to listen to the gossip of a great city rather than what i said to you that people should not be permitted to annoy you with idle tales i have had your effects transported to the elise you shall come to paris very soon but be called
contented and have entire confidence in me. Napoleon.
Monsieur Masson, who places the date of this last letter a week earlier, says,
the same evening Josephine was installed at the Elysset, and the emperor came immediately to see her.
But this seems to be an error.
In the collection of Queen Orteans, we find the following letter, number 209.
To the Empress at Malmaison, Sunday 9 o'clock, question mark 11 February, 8.5.
My
Ammy, I was very glad to see you
day before yesterday.
I hoped to go to Malmaison
during the week.
I have had your affairs here
arranged and ordered everything taken
to the Elisééé Napoleon.
I pray you keep well.
Adieu, my amy.
Napoleon.
On Tuesday, the 20th February,
the Emperor, after hunting
in the woods of Versailles,
attended a fate given by
Marshal Bessier at Grignon.
From there he went to Rambouillet
and returned to Paris at six o'clock on the evening of Friday the 23rd February.
It was apparently just prior to this absence that Josephine moved to Paris, as will appear from the two following letters.
To the Empress at the Elysset Napoleon.
Nineteen February, 1810.
My ami, I have received your letter.
I wish to see you, but your reflections may be correct.
There are perhaps some objections to our finding ourselves under the same roof during the first year.
however the country place of bessierre is too distant to be able to return besides i have a slight cold and i am not sure to go there adieu mon ami napoleon friday six p m twenty third february eighteen ten
savari has handed me your letter on my arrival i notice with regret that you are sad i am glad that you saw no signs of the fire i had fine weather at rambouillet
hortense tells me that you had planned to come to dine with vassier and return to paris to sleep i regret that you were not able to carry out your project adieu my ami be gay think that this is the way to please me napoleon
in the collection of queen ortense the earlier letters of napoleon to josephine almost without exception are fully dated but those written after the divorce usually give only the day of the week this makes the task of arrangement in many cases very difficult
In this instance, however, it is manifest that the letter dated 19 February, which the editor's place last, was written before the departure of the emperor for Rambouillet, and the letter dated Friday 6pm was written after his return.
It is also evident that Josephine did not move to Paris until after the middle of February.
30. 1810
The Chateau of Navarre
From the time that the divorce of Josephine was first officially discussed, at the Airfert Conference
in the autumn of 1808, Napoleon's preference seems to have been for an alliance with the imperial
family of Russia. The replies of the Tsar to the overtures of Talleyrand at that time had been
equally vague and discreet, but a week after his return home, his elder sister Katarin had been
affiance to the heir of the Duchy of Oldenburg. During the following year, the time of the
emperor was taken up with the campaigns in Spain and Austria, and the matter remained in abeyance.
But his thoughts still turned to Russia, and on the 22nd November, 1809, a week before the formal
notification to Josephine, he instructed Champagne, the Minister of Foreign Affairs, to send a
dispatch to Colleen Coeur, the French ambassador at St. Petersburg, directing him to ask the Tsar
to state frankly whether he would consider favorably an alliance between the emperor and his
younger sister, Anne. At that time, it took two weeks for a courier to go from Paris to St. Petersburg,
and a month later no reply had yet been received from Russia. Another month passed, and Napoleon's
patience was exhausted. After Mass on Sunday the 28th of January 1810, the Emperor called a meeting
of the principal dignitaries of the Empire to discuss the respective advantages and disadvantages of a
matrimonial alliance with Austria, Russia, or Saxony.
Prince Eugène, Talleyan, Champagne, Bertier, and Marais declared for the Archduxathe
Marie-Louise, Murat and Cambassarrez for the Grand Duchess Anne, while only Lebrun favoured
the daughter of the King of Saxony. Napoleon took no part in the discussion and gave no indication
of his preference. Finally, on the 6th February, a dispatch was received from Collin-Cour.
He stated that he had not yet succeeded in obtaining a definite answer from the Tsar,
but added that Anne, who was only 15, was not yet of an age to marry,
and furthermore that she was not willing to change her religion.
Napoleon hesitated no longer.
He immediately sent a messenger to inquire of the Austrian ambassador,
Prince de Schwarzenberg, whether the marriage contract with the Archduchess Marie-Louise
could be signed the next day.
The contract, which was accordingly signed as proposed, was
an almost exact copy of that of Marie Antoinette, 40 years before. The marriage by procuration
was celebrated at Vienna on the 11th of March, the Archduke Charles representing the Emperor
Napoleon. On the 23rd March, Marie-Louise crossed the Rhine at Strasbourg, and four days later
reached Compienne, where Napoleon had been awaiting her arrival for a week. The court left
Compiang on the 30th of March and arrived at St. Clu the same evening. Here the civil marriage was
celebrated on Sunday the 1st of April. The religious ceremony was performed in Paris the
following day by Cardinal Fesh, and took place in the Salon Carré of the Louvre, which had been
transformed into a chapel for the occasion. In the meantime, Josephine at the Elisie was finding
her life in Paris as monotonous as it had been at Malmeson. The capital had never been so gay.
Every night there were dinners, balls, suppers, but the Empress Josephine was not present.
the emperor attended the opera the theatres he even gave in the former apartments of the empress at the tuileries a performance by the troupe of the theatre
there were balls given by schwarzenberg taleran poline bertie cambasseres but in the midst of all these gaieties josephine passed her evenings quietly at home
the emperor had completely changed his habitutes and seemed to be in training for his life with a young wife
in place of the former tragedies he demanded comedies to amuse him he hunted in the bois de boulogne at st germain and at sateri from time to time he paid a brief visit to josephine but his letters had almost entirely ceased
in the centre of paris josephine felt as though she were marooned on a desert island after passing only a few weeks at the elise on the ninth of march josephine returned to malmaison
it is not definitely known whether she tired of her isolation in the capital or whether she received a delicate hint that her absence would be appreciated during the coming fact in honor of the arrival of the new empress
the very day that the marriage contract with marie louise was signed the emperor had taken up the matter of finding a suitable country residence for josephine one not too far from paris but at the same time more distant than malmaison which was almost at the gates of the city
his choice finally fell on the old chateau of navarre near ivre about seventy miles west of paris it will be recalled that this property had been assigned to the prince of the asturias in may eighteen hundred eight as a part of the bargain for the crown of spain
but the agreement had never been carried out and the following january by a decree of the emperor the land of navarre had been added to the domain of the state this chateau owed its name to jeanne a france queen of navarre who about the middle of the fourteenth century had erected the building on the site of an old manor house
three hundred years later the property was seated by louis the fourteenth to the duke de bouillon in exchange for the sovereignty of sedan and remained in the possession of that family up to the time of the revolution
By a curious coincidence, it was one of the cadet members of this same family who built at Paris the hotel which later became the palace of the Elysses.
During the revolution the property was confiscated and had later been joined to the Crown lands, although the title was far from clear.
It was also very doubtful whether the Emperor had the power now to alienate the property from the Crown domain and present it to a private person.
But after certain formalities more or less legal had been complied with, the Emperor had been complied with,
the emperor directed marais to prepare letters patent erecting the land of navarre into a duchy and conveyed the title and the revenues to josephine for her life in a letter to the empress at malmaison napoleon toss her of this gift
paris twelve march eighteen ten mon ami i hope that you have been satisfied with what i have done for navarre you will have seen in this act a new proof of my desire to be agreeable to you take possession of navarre
you might go there the 25th of March to pass the month of April. Adieu, my
ami. Napoleon. This letter of the emperor was in effect and order which admitted of no evasion.
The date of her departure and the length of her exile were both fixed.
The 19th of March, the day of St. Joseph, was her fate, but it was very quietly celebrated this year.
The following day Eugène was to arrive with his wife, whom she had not seen since their marriage at Munich four years before.
They came to spend a week at Manmaison, and thus Josephine found an excuse to defer her departure for a few days longer.
She had already stayed three days beyond the limit fixed by the Emperor.
The new Empress was at Compiang and expected in Paris by the end of the week.
It was time to start, and Josephine went into her first exile.
Late in the afternoon of Thursday the 29th of March, Josephine made her triumphal entry into Evreux.
She was received by the men.
the prefect and the authorities with a band of music and a guard of honor the church bells were rung and there were salvos of artillery josephine did not stop in the city but proceeded directly to navarre where she arrived at nightfall
the first view of the chateau was very disappointing it was a huge two-storied square block surrounded by a dome upon which one of the original owners had intended to set up a statue of his uncle the great turenne at the side of the chateau
to the smaller house. Both alike were dilapidated, drafty, and unfurnished, in spite of the
fact that for two weeks past all of the laborers available at Evre had worked to make in haste the
most necessary repairs. The unfinished and uncrowned dome, which gave a ludicrous appearance to the
building, was irreverently termed the Mermite by the Normans of the neighborhood. The rooms were
vast and chilly. The windows would not close. The roof leaked and the chimneys smoked. The
chateau's situation in a valley while giving from the window's beautiful views of wooded hills in the summer made it very damp for the rest of the year on all sides there were large bodies of water with cascades and fountains
and the park was planted with magnificent trees but at the end of march the leaves are rare and between the water which flows the water which stagnates and the water which falls with for companions these black skeletons denuded and oozing it would require to be pleased a backing of game
which Josephine did not bring with her.
A few days after her arrival, Josephine wrote
Ortense, who was at Compiang with the court.
Navarre
3rd April, 1810
I arrived here in good health, my dear Artance,
although somewhat tired from the journey.
I was depressed by the greeting I received.
The inhabitants of Evreux have displayed much enthusiasm
over my arrival, but this appearance of a fact
somewhat resembled the compliments of condolence.
the emperor is happy he deserves to be and he will be more and more this thought is a great consolation for me and the only one which sustains my courage navarre will become a very fine residence but it demands many repairs and expenditures
absolutely everything needs to be done over the chateau is not habitable the persons whom i have brought with me have each only a small room of which the door and the windows do not close my lodging is also
very small and ill-arranged, and the woodwork is in bad order.
The park is magnificent. It is in a large valley between two hills planted with the most
beautiful trees. But there is too much water, which makes the place damp and unhealthy.
One should live at Navarre during the months of May, June, July, and the beginning of August.
Then it is the most enchanting spot to be found anywhere.
At the present season, Malmaison would be preferable to me. My life here is that of the country.
i go out for a walk or a drive when it does not rain in the evening i have a game of baggammon with the bishop of evre who is very agreeable in spite of his seventy-five years
the time passes slowly but it will seem shorter to me when you are here i look for you impatiently your rooms are ready they are not handsome you will only camp out but you know with what tenderness you will be received adieu my dear daughter i embrace you
if the emperor asks you for news of me tell him what is true that my only occupation is thinking of him josephine in a letter to her husband at compiang written early in april madame de remusas says
there are many tales here at paris regarding the court in the life you lead there in general all these inventions are unkind they all tend to show theuteur of the manners of the empress and the brusqueness of her character
then every one recalls the other and that will make her position difficult they say that she will only be duchesse de navarre that she will be relegated to the duchy of berg that malmaison will be bought back from her
that our new sovereign has displayed a great aversion to seeing her so near and in support of that assertion they cite words clearly invented for it is impossible that they should have been repeated i await your return to know the truth
as madame de remusat was a great friend of josephine these rumors undoubtedly reached her at navarre and increased her anxiety to return to malmaison the emperor had not written her since his marriage and she looked upon his silence as a proof of his intention to abandon her entirely
she feared to write him direct but through eugene asked permission to return to malmaison the reply being favorable josephine wrote the letter which follows navarre
April 1810.
Sire, I have received, through my son, the assurance that your majesty consents to my return to
Manmaison, and is willing to grant me the advances which I have asked for to render the chateau of Navarre
habitable.
This double favor, sire, goes far to drive away the great anxiety and even fear, inspired by
your majesty's long silence.
I was afraid of being banished entirely from your remembrance.
I see now that I am not.
I am therefore less unhappy, and even as happy as it is possible for me to be hence forward.
I shall go to Malmaison at the end of the month, since Your Majesty sees no objection to this.
My plan is to stay there for a very short time. I shall soon take my departure to go to the waters.
But during my stay at Malmaison, Your Majesty may be sure that I shall live there as if I were
a thousand leagues away from Paris. I have made a great sacrifice, sire, and every day I
more appreciate its magnitude.
This sacrifice, however, shall be all it ought to be.
It shall be complete on my part.
Your Majesty shall not be troubled in the midst of your happiness
by any expression of my regrets.
May I have always a little place in your remembrance
and a large place in your esteem and friendship.
This will soften my grief without compromising,
it seems to me, that which is of the highest importance,
the happiness of your majesty.
Josephine
This letter does not seem to merit
either the severe criticism of some of the biographers
or the eulogy of others.
Durkan declares it to be totally lacking in dignity
with its irritating reiteration of the sacrifices she had made
and its demand for money.
On the other hand, Saint-Amagh considers it to be
an eloquent and simple expression
of a true and noble sentiment
in which humility and dignity are perfectly combined.
And Masson says,
in truth this letter is a masterpiece in which is to be found everything to excite the memory of napoleon arouse his former affection and awaken his pity the best comment on this letter however is to be found in the reply of the emperor
compiengt twenty first april eighteen ten mon ami i am in receipt your letter of the nineteen april it is in bad form de mavis
i am always the same men like myself never change i cannot imagine what ojane told you i have not written you because you have not written you and because i wished in every way to be agreeable to you i am glad to know that you are going to malmaison and that you will be contented
i shall be pleased to hear from you and to respond i shall not say more until you have had a chance to compare this letter with your own after that i leave you to decide which is the better friend you or myself adieu mon ami take care of yourself and be just both to yourself and to me
napoleon this letter is written with the old familiar tutuamont so difficult to render into english which is employed by napoleon in all his letters to josephine
we think that the reader will agree that her letter showed bad form was unwarranted in its assumptions and that napoleon on this as on many other occasions proved himself the better friend josephine's reply merits quotation in full navarre no date
a thousand thousand loving thanks for not having forgotten me my son has just brought me your letter with what eagerness i read it and yet i spent plenty of time in doing so for there was not a word of it which did not make me weep
but these tears were very sweet i have got back my heart entirely and it will always be as it is now certain feelings are life itself and can only finish with life
i should be in despair if my letter of the nineteenth had displeased you i do not remember its exact wording but i know how painful was the feeling which dictated it the sorrow of not hearing from you
i wrote you at the time of my departure from al meson and since then how many times have i not wished to write to you but i knew the reason for your silence and i feared to importune you by a letter yours has been a balm to me be happy
Be as happy as you deserve.
It is my whole heart which speaks to you.
You have just given me my share of happiness,
and a share which I appreciate to the full.
Nothing to me can be worth so much as a proof of your remembrance.
Adieu, my friend, I thank you as tenderly as I shall always love you.
Josephine.
This letter is very sweet and tender, but somehow it does not ring true.
Masson says, if it is sincere it is maladroit,
but if she is playing a role knowing her partner as she does is it not adroit in the highest degree in answer to her letter napoleon wrote briefly from comping on the twenty eighth of april encouraging her to go to the waters and assuring her once more of his unchanged feelings
he too had evidently heard of the rumors spoken of by madame de remusat for he said in his letter do not listen to the babel of paris they are idle and far from knowing the truth
in fact there was not the slightest foundation for the reports napoleon showed himself most willing to fall in with josephine's plans for the remainder of the year and the following winter she wished to go first to malmaison then at the end of may to some watering-place for three months
after that she proposed to proceed to the south of france florence rome and naples to spend the winter with urgen in milan and return in the spring to malmason and navarre
the emperor did not offer to meet the expenses of the repairs at navarre but agreed to advance the six hundred thousand francs left after payment of her debts out of her allowance from the crown treasury for eighteen ten and eighteen eleven
also that the one hundred thousand francs allowed her for extraordinary expenses at malmaison should be diverted to navarre the middle of may josephine returned to malmaison then in all its spring glory for the first time she is able to enjoy her
hyacinths and tulips imported from Holland, for as she once complained, Bonaparte always
summons me to him just at the moment they are in flower.
End of chapters 29 and 30.
Chapters 31 and 32 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire by Walter
Geer.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
31. 1810.
Ex-Leban and Geneva.
the last week in april eighteen ten napoleon left compien with marie louise for a visit of five weeks to belchum madame de la tour du pen the wife of the french prefect at brussels at that time has given us in her recollections a striking picture of the young empress whom she saw frequently while the court was at laccon
she says that marie louise was insignificant absolutely devoid of intelligence and entirely unworthy of the great man whose destiny she shared that she seemed to make it a point to be a significant absolutely devoid of intelligence and entirely unworthy of the great man whose destiny she shared that she seemed to make it a point to be a point to be a
as disagreeable as possible to everyone with whom she came in contact.
The new empress was no more popular at Paris, where Josephine was more and more regretted.
During the absence of the emperor, Josephine held a regular court at Malmaison.
The crowd rushed there, all the more eager because their majesties were at Antwerp,
and they had no fear of displeasing Marie-Louise.
The astute courtiers always perceived signs of a return to power of the old favorite.
The Emperor had invited Erein to accompany him, and during the journey had treated him with marked distinction.
Josephine had discreetly revealed to her confidential friends that she had received from the Emperor a letter full of affection,
in which he gave her permission to remain at Mademason, even after the return of the court to Saint-Clue,
and promised to pay her an early visit.
This letter, which bears no date, runs as follows.
To the Empress Josephine at Manmaison.
"'Mon ami, I am in receipt your letter.
"'Eugène will give you news of my trip and of the Empress.
"'I highly approve of your going to the waters
"'and hope they will do you good.
"'I much desire to see you.
"'If you are at Manmaison at the end of the month,
"'I will come to see you.
"'I count upon being at St. Clue the thirtieth of the month.
"'My health is very good.
"'I lack nothing but the knowledge
"'that you are contented and well.
"'Let me know the name that you would like to assume on route.'
never doubt the entire sincerity of my affection for you it will endure as long as i live you would be very unjust not to believe it napoleon at this time josephine was very anxious about her daughter
after the stay of the court at compien the emperor had ordered ortense to go to amsterdam to rejoin her husband with whom she had not lived since the birth of louis napoleon two years before her health was still very bad and she complied with the emperor's order with
great reluctance. The letters of Josephine during the month of May all manifest her great anxiety
and express her desire that Ortaunce should accompany her to the waters, either to X la Chappelle
her first idea, or to X Les Ben in Savois, where she finally decided to go. The condition of
Orteans finally became so alarming that at the end of May, her husband consented to her going
to Plombierre. Napoleon's promised visit to Malmaison finally took place on the 13th of June,
twelve days after his return to St. Clu.
In a letter to her daughter written the following day,
Josephine records her joy.
To Queen Orteans at Blombierre,
Malmaison, 14 June, 1810.
My dear, Orthans, you ask me what I am doing.
I had an hour of happiness yesterday.
The Emperor came to see me.
His presence made me happy,
although it renewed my sorrows.
Such emotions one would willingly go through all
All the time that he stayed with me I had sufficient courage to keep back the tears which I felt were ready to flow.
But after he was gone, I could not keep them back, and I became very unhappy.
He was kind and amiable to me as usual, and I hope that he read in my heart all the affection
and all the devotion for him which fills me.
I spoke to him about your position, and he listened to me with interest.
He thinks that you should not return again to Holland, the king not having behaved as he ought to have done.
the emperor's advice therefore is that you should take the waters for the necessary time and that you should write to your husband that the advice of the physicians is that you should live in a warm climate for some time and in consequence you are going to italy to your brothers as for your son he will give orders that he is not to leave france
Your son, who is here just now, is very well.
He is pink and white.
Josephine
A few days later on the 18th of June,
Josephine set out for Ex-Lébein,
traveling under the name of the Contest d'Arberg,
and accompanied only by four members of her household.
She had chosen this place in preference to her old resort Plombier,
because her health required distraction above all,
and she hoped to find more of that in a place which she had not yet seen,
and whose situation was picturesque, also because, the waters are especially renowned for the nerves.
The Empress occupied a modest habitation with Madame Doe-Donard, and the rest of her attendants were lodged in a small adjoining house.
A week after her arrival, she was rejoined by Madame Derrimusat.
At X, Josephine led a very simple life.
Bathing, excursions, reading the latest novels from Paris, dinner at 8 o'clock, on account of the heat,
A little music or a game afterwards, so passed her days.
She had arrived before the opening of the season, but as soon as her presence was known,
visitors began to come from all the neighboring towns in France, Switzerland and northern Italy.
On the 10th of July, she had a short visit from her son who was on his way to Milan.
Jeanne had recently been made by the Emperor hereditary Grand Duke of Frankfurt,
which was generally assumed to be the end of any expectations that he might become king of Italy.
It was rumored that Napoleon intended to unite Italy to the empire,
and that Eugen would cease to be his adopted son when he had a son of his own.
Josefine feared that he would cease to be viceroy at the same time that Oortense descended from the throne of Holland.
This event had just been announced to her in a letter from the emperor.
To the Empress Josephine at X.
Rambouillet, 8 July, 1810
My ami, I have received your letter of the 3rd July.
You will have seen Eugène, and his presence will have done you good.
I have learned with pleasure that the waters have benefited you.
The King of Holland has just abdicated the crown, leaving the regency to the Queen in accordance with the Constitution.
He has departed from Amsterdam and left the Grand Duke de Berg.
I have united Holland to France, but this act is fortunate in that it emancipates the Queen,
and this unfortunate girl is going to return to Paris with her son, the Grand Duke de Berg.
that will make her entirely happy.
My health is good.
I have come here to hunt for several days.
I shall see you with pleasure this autumn.
Never doubt my friendship.
I never change.
Take good care of your health.
Be gay and believe in the sincerity of my affections.
Napoleon.
Although Josephine in her letters to Artans
complains of her quiet surroundings
and speaks of her melancholy,
her life at X seems to have been quite gay.
The only incident which produced any excitement
was the narrow escape which she had from death
on a visit to the Abbey of Oat-Comb,
when a sudden storm on the lake nearly caused her boat to found her.
This is referred to in a letter from Napoleon at Triano.
I have heard with anxiety the danger which you ran,
for a child of the aisles of the ocean to perish in a lake
would be a catastrophe.
On her return to X from this excursion,
which had so nearly proved fatal,
Josephine found a Chamberlain of Queen Ortense,
who announced her arrival on the following day.
The meeting of the mother and daughter was very affecting.
The similarity in their situations
had produced a new bond of sympathy between them.
At the time of her arrival,
Ortense was ill both in body and soul,
threatened with consumption,
and absolutely worn out and discouraged.
But in spite of all her troubles,
she was her usual amiable self
and proved a great consolation to her mother.
It was at this time that Ortax was brought into intimate contact with Chalde de Flau,
whose social accomplishments had made him a great favorite with Josephine.
Their intimacy resulted 15 months later in the birth of the future Duke de Morni,
so well known under the Second Empire.
The visit of Hortense was very short as she was ordered by the emperor
to return to Fontainebleau and rejoin her two sons.
She was therefore unable, as she wished,
to accompany her mother on her tour of Switzerland during her.
the months of September and October.
Leaving X. the 1st of September,
Josephine went to Cicheron,
a small village in the suburbs of Geneva.
She made this her headquarters
during the two following months
while she visited all the principal points
of interest in Switzerland.
As she was never fond of traveling,
the only explanation of her course at this time,
is the report which had just reached her
of the condition of Marie-Louise.
We find the first mention of the subject
in a letter to her daughter.
to Queen Ortense at X.
Cichron, 9 September 1810
My dear, Ortense, I have not heard from the emperor,
but I thought that I ought to prove to him the interest which I take in the pregnancy of the Empress.
I have just written him on the subject.
I hope that this step will put him at his ease
and that he will be able to speak to me about it with a confidence as great as my attachment for him.
Adieu, my dear daughter.
I tenderly embrace you.
Josephine
As usual,
Josephine's letter
to the emperor is not extant,
but his reply is given
in Queen of Tons' collection.
To the Empress Josephine at X.
St. Clu,
14th September, 1810.
My ami,
I am in receipt your letter
of the 9th September.
I am pleased to learn
that you are well.
The Empress is, in fact,
gross de 4-mois.
She is in good health
and much attached to me.
Adieu, my ami.
Do not doubt my interest in you.
and my affection for you.
Napoleon.
This correspondence seems to furnish a sufficient explanation of Josephine's restlessness.
She now showed a great desire to cancel the program which she herself had submitted to the
emperor in the spring, and to return at once to Malmaison.
She evidently wrote Napoleon on the subject, for we have his reply.
To the Empress Josephine at Geneva, Fontainebleau, 1 October 1810,
I have received your letter.
"'Ortance, whom I have seen, will have told you what I think.
"'Go to see your son this winter.
"'Come back to the waters of X next year,
"'or I'll stay at Navarre for the spring.
"'I would advise you to go to Navarre at once
"'if I did not fear that you would grow weary there.
"'My opinion is that you could only spend the winter
"'conveniently at Milan or Navarre,
"'but I do not wish in any way to put you out.
"'Adieu, my ami.
"'Be contented, and do not lose your head.
"'Never doubt my affection.
Napoleon
Josephine returns to the same subject
in two letters to her daughter
from Bern the following month
To Queen Orthance at Fontainebleau
Bern 12 October 1810
My dear Ortense
Not a word from you in the twenty days
Since our separation
What does your silence mean?
If in three days from now
I do not receive letters telling me what to do
I shall think that the emperor
Has not approved the request which I made of him
I shall leave for Geneva.
From Geneva I shall return to Malmaison.
Then at least I shall be in France,
and if all the world deserts me,
I shall dwell there alone,
conscious of having sacrificed my happiness
to make that of others.
Josephine
Bern, 13 October, 1810.
My dear Hortense,
I am today in receipt your letter of the fourth.
After having reflected well,
I shall follow the Emperor's first idea.
and shall establish myself at Navarre. It seems to me very unsuitable to go to Italy,
especially in the winter. If it were for a visit of one or two months, I should gladly go to see my son,
but to stop there longer is impossible. All that you tell me of the interest which the Emperor
still has in me gives me pleasure. I have made for him the greatest of sacrifices, the affections
of my heart. I am sure that he will not forget me, if he says to himself sometimes that another person
would never have had the courage to make such a sacrifice.
I would like to receive another line from you
before arranging my departure for Navarre
in order to be sure that the Emperor approves
of my passing the winter in that place.
Speak to me frankly on that point.
I confess to you that if I were obliged
to remove from France for more than a month,
I should die of grief.
At Navarre, at least I shall have the pleasure
of seeing you sometimes.
Josephine.
This revelation of the deep affection of Josephine for Napoleon in the confidence of an intimate
personal letter to her daughter seems a sufficient answer to those writers who have frequently
expressed doubts of her sincerity.
Upon her return to Geneva the 21st of October, Josephine found a note from the Emperor and
at once wrote Ortense to announce her final plans.
To Queen Orthans at Fontainebleau, Geneva, no date, 1810.
The Emperor has written me a very amiable little letter.
You can judge, my dear Ortonce, what pleasure it has given me.
The Emperor advises me to go to Milan or Navarre.
I have decided for Navarre.
You will find me much changed, my dear daughter.
The past month I have grown quite thin,
and I feel that I need rest,
and above all that the Emperor does not forget me.
Adieu, my dear Ortense, I have just written the Emperor.
I advise him that I count upon leaving Geneva the 1st of November,
that I shall go to Malmaison for 24 hours.
You will be very kind if you come there to make me a little visit.
After that I shall go to stay at Navarre.
Let me know if this arrangement suits the Emperor.
Josephine
While she was still at Bern or soon after her return to Geneva,
Josephine received a very long letter from Madame de Riemuzza,
in which, with many flattering phrases,
she mingles the advice not to return to Paris.
The letter bears no date, but was probably written early in October 1810.
The note of Paul de Remusat, in which he assigns the date to the last of 1812 or the beginning of 1813, is absurd.
This letter is quoted at length in the collection of Queen Orteans, and in many of the biographies,
but it hardly deserves so much space.
Apparently, Josephine had wished to meet Marie-Louise,
but Madame de Remusat assures her that the time has not yet come for such a step.
Then follow long details to show the jealousy of Marie-Louise.
among those whom the writer had seen was D'Eroque, the Grand Marshal of the Palace.
From him she gathered that Josephine had still further sacrifices to make.
May you not find in the course of a rather more prolonged journey, pleasures which you do not foresee at first,
at Milan there awaits you the sweet spectacle of a son's merited success.
Florence and Rome too would gratify your tastes.
You would encounter at every step in Italy, memories which the emperor would see recalled with Nobeck's
for to him they are connected with the epic of his earliest glories.
There is much more in the same strain, and it is evidently Napoleon who is speaking through the mouth of D'urok.
The emperor, however, was too tenderly disposed toward Josephine to give her a positive order not to return to France,
and she was not a woman to take a hint.
Before leaving Geneva, Josephine purchased the chateau of Prigny on the edge of the lake facing Montblanc,
for which she paid nearly 200,000 francs.
After this final extravagance,
she set out on the first day of November
for her stay of 24 hours at Malmaison.
Napoleon was still at Fontainebleau with Marie-Louise,
but his own return to the Tuileries was fixed for the 15th November.
As Josephine was still at Malmaison at that date,
the emperor sent Cambassarrez to hasten her departure.
She protested that she could not leave without time to pack up,
and it was not until the two.
22nd of November that she actually reached Navarre.
32.
1811 to 1812.
Navarre, Malmeson, and Milan.
During the absence of Josephine,
the interior of the chateau of Navarre
had been restored as completely as possible,
and refurnished in a simple manner
so that now it was quite habitable.
It was still difficult to heat the immense oval salon
which occupied the center of the building.
It was paved with marble,
and lighted only by windows in the vestibule
and openings pierced in the lofty dome above.
But the architect had succeeded
in arranging around this room a salon,
a music room, and a card room.
A number of comfortable, if not very luxurious,
chambers had also been partitioned off
for the members of the household.
By burning an immense quantity of wood and coal
in the fireplaces,
it was now possible to make the rooms fairly comfortable.
Large sums had also been spent
on the gardens and hot houses.
and Navarre promised in time to become a second malmaison.
The household was much more numerous than before.
Josephine had brought with her quite a number of young girls,
as pretty as they were poor,
who were supposed to possess some talents as musicians.
The life at the chateau was nevertheless very monotonous.
Josephine remained in her room until eleven o'clock,
at which hour the dijonnet was served punctually.
After this meal, which lasted three-quarters of an hour,
the young people had music in the salon
while the older persons played cards or chess.
In the afternoon there were promenades
through the gardens and park or drives in the forest of Ivre.
If the weather was unfavorable,
the time was passed in reading the latest novels,
of which a box was received every week from Paris.
At four o'clock everyone was free,
and Josephine went to her room
where she usually summoned one of her old intimates
for a confidential chat.
At six o'clock, dinner was served,
and there were always some invited guests from the city,
the prefect, the mayor,
and most frequently the bishop, Monseigneur Boulié.
There was only one table,
and the service was very luxurious.
After dinner there was music, cards, and sometimes dancing.
Josephine was fond of games,
and played cards, backgammon and billiards equally well.
The evening usually ended at 11 o'clock when everyone retired.
Josephine, whose health had always been good,
had never been so well. She no longer suffered from the frequent headaches which were due mainly
to the irregular hours of the Emperor. She began to grow stout, and for the first time in her life
was obliged to wear a corset in place of the former brassiere. Her only trouble was with her
eyes which her physician told her was due to her crying so much. Nevertheless, she wrote to her
daughter, for some time past I only weep occasionally. The first of the year, Oughtons finally arrived
for her long promised visit, but while Josephine received her with transports of joy,
it was not the same with the other members of the household.
The Queen, with all her affectation of simplicity, was very rigorous on the point of etiquette,
and insisted that her Chamberlain should appear every evening in full uniform and her ladies
in decoulté gowns. Under the mild regime of Josephine, everyone had become somewhat careless,
and court ceremonial had been more honored in the breach than the observance.
therefore Ottens was generally regarded as a killjoy.
It was quite different when Eugène came.
He had always preserved his simple boyish manners
and was only too glad to escape from the entire Semitiquet he was obliged to maintain at Milan.
He entered heartily into the games and pastimes of the young people
and was a universal favorite.
His trunks were full of presents, which he distributed with a lavish hand,
and this was the only way in which he recalled the fact that he was a prince.
The day of St. Joseph fell in March, and on the 18th, all the personages of the city came
in carriages to Navarre to salute the Empress and wish her a happy fete day. In the evening
there was a celebration at the chateau, and Josephine distributed presents. The following evening
the Empress gave a ball in the Grand Salon, where a parquet floor had been laid for dancing
over the marble tiles. On the 20th of March to continue the festivities, the Mayor gave a dinner
in honor of the Empress. She sent all of the members of her household, but remained at home
herself as she was expecting news from Paris. In this way, she missed the first notification of the
great event. At the moment that the guests came out for dinner at eight o'clock, a dispatch was
received from Paris announcing the birth of the King of Rome. Enthusiastic toasts were drunk,
the bells were rung, and the cannon fired. Josephine, who was anxiously waiting at Naval, heard
the sound of the guns and the bells before the postmaster could reach her presence.
He had been advised by the courier on his way to Cherbourg, had hastily donned his uniform and
rushed to the chateau. When he communicated the news to Josephine, he noticed at first a slight
frown upon her face, then, recovering her usual gracious manner, she said,
The Emperor cannot doubt the lively interest that I take in an event which grounds his joy.
He knows that I cannot separate myself from his destiny, and that
His happiness will always make me happy.
The following morning, Eugène arrived at Navarre.
The Emperor had had the delicate thought of sending him to tell Josephine all the details of the happy event.
She immediately sent her felicitations, and on the 22nd of March received from the Emperor
the following letter sent by one of his pages.
To the Empress Josephine at Navarre. Paris 22nd March, 1811.
"'Mon ami, I have received your letter. I thank you. My son is big and healthy. I hope that he will do well. He has my chest, my mouth, and my eyes. I hope that he will fulfill his destiny. I am always well satisfied with Ergen. He has never caused me the slightest sorrow.' Napoleon.
By this tacit comparison of his son and Ergen, the emperor gave Josephine the greatest consolation in his power. By this
association of the two names, he practically assured her of the continuance of his protection and
goodwill. In fact, although his letters had not been so frequent of late, Napoleon when he
wrote, had been as tender and as cordial as ever, even with a touch of humor. Thus he had written
her in reply to her New Year's greetings. They say that there are more women than men at Navarre.
In a later letter he said, I am well, I hope to have a son. I will let you know at once. When you see me,
will find that my regard for you has not changed.
The Emperor was soon to give her a new proof of his kindness
in sending her permission to spend the springtime at Malmaison,
which he knew would give her the greatest possible pleasure.
The middle of April, therefore, we find her with Erejean at Malmaison,
where she stayed during the whole month of May.
This visit is passed over in silence by nearly all the biographers of Josephine,
who state that she remained at Navarre until the middle of September.
About this time, Josephine found herself once more in serious financial difficulties.
In spite of the two millions she had received in 1811, she had debts to the amount of a million more,
and no funds to complete her purchase of Preni to pay for the repairs at Navarre and meet her current bills.
She was compelled to apply to the Emperor who wrote her the following letter.
To the Empress Josephine Trianon, 25 August 1811.
I have received your letter.
I see with pleasure that you are in good health.
I am at Triano for several days.
I expect to go to Compienne.
My health is very good.
Put your affairs in order.
Do not spend more than a million and a half
and put as much aside every year.
That will make a reserve of 15 millions in 10 years
for your grandchildren.
It is nice to be able to give them something
and to be useful to them.
Instead of that, I am told that you have debts.
That would be very bad.
look after your affairs and do not give to everybody who asks it if you desire to please me let me know that you have a large fund judge what a poor opinion i shall have of you if i know that you are in debt with an income of three millions adieu mon ami take care of your health napoleon
this letter number two hundred twenty seven in the didot collection there is the date of twenty fifth of august eighteen thirteen but this is plainly an error that is a
year Napoleon left Paris the middle of April for the campaign in Saxony and did not return until
the 9th of November. On the other hand, he was at the Triano on the 25th of August 1811, and that is
undoubtedly the correct date. After a careful inquiry into Josephine's affairs, the report made to the
emperor showed that her situation was even worse than he expected, and on the 4th November he sent
word to her intendant that he had allowed an additional sum of a million francs for her dowry that
year. Two years later, on his return from the disastrous campaign of 1813, the emperor sent at once
for Mollien, the minister of the treasury, and in place of many subjects far more important, he took up
the finances of the Empress Josephine, the economies which she could and should make.
She can no longer count upon me to pay her debts, he said. I no longer have the right to add
anything to what I have done for her. The fate of her family must not rest only upon my head.
Then he added in a low tone as if speaking to himself,
"'I'm mortal, and plus than another.'
When Mollien told him that Josephine had shed tears in the course of an interview he had with her,
Napoleon exclaimed,
"'But she must not be allowed to weep.'
Immediately after this conference with Moliin, Napoleon wrote Josephine,
"'To the Empress Josephine at Malmaison, Friday, 8am, November, 1813.
I am sending to learn how you are, for Ortens has told me that you were in bed yesterday.
I have been annoyed with you on account of your debts.
I do not wish you to have any.
On the contrary, I hope that you will put a million aside each year to give to your
granddaughters when they are married.
However, never doubt my friendship for you, and do not worry over this matter.
Adieu, my ami, send me word that you are well.
They tell me that you are getting as fat as a good farmer's wife.
of Normandy, Napoleon.
As Masson says after recounting this incident,
Nettil not always the same,
and she'll,
always,
one would think that this new financial crisis
coming after so many others
might have made Josephine,
at least for a time, more reasonable,
but such was not the case.
While she was at Malmaison,
she sent for her old architect, Fontaine,
to consult him about her plans for Navarre.
She wanted to remove the door,
and change the chateau into an Italian villa with a flat roof and a crown of balustrades.
A month later she again sends for the architect. This time she has another plan,
to construct at Malmaison a new chateau with all the modern improvements. As this will be
very costly in order to provide the funds, she begs Fontaine to propose to the emperor
if he finds an opportunity in exchange of the palace of the Elyz against its value and money.
This project did not displease Napoleon, who had often regretted his gift of the Eisei to Josephine.
There was no privacy at the Tuileries, and he had deprived himself of the only residence in Paris
where he and his family could take a little exercise.
Josephine could not reside in the city, and for both of them it seemed an excellent arrangement.
Napoleon was therefore inclined to welcome the proposal, but he did not care to add another
million or two to the large sums he had already given the Empress, he accordingly made a counter-proposition.
An exchange of the Elyise for the Chateau of Lachen, a modern palace richly furnished and in perfect order,
surrounded by a large park and near an important city. He had purchased this property when
First Consul in April 1804 for about a million francs, and had subsequently spent another
million in alterations and additions. The Chateau was considered to be one of the finest of the
imperial residences, and was always kept in perfect order, ready for immediate occupancy.
By a decree under date of 10 February 1812, the Emperor authorized the exchange,
but Josephine never visited her new residence even to take possession.
In September 1811, Josephine returned to Malmaison for the winter.
The Navarre party, as it was called, was now in a flourishing condition, and the court of
the Empress Josephine fairly rivaled that of the Empress Marie-Louis.
In the spring of 1812 she had the pleasure of a short visit from Eugène, who had been summoned
from Milan to receive the orders of the Emperor regarding the coming war with Russia.
Augusta was expecting another baby the last of July, and Eugène persuaded his mother to make
her long-deferred visit to Milan to be present on that occasion.
In May she passed several days at St. Lu with Hortense and her children, but she did not venture
to start for Italy without the permission of the Emperor.
From Danzig on the 8th of June he wrote,
I hope that the waters will do you good,
and I shall be glad to see you on my return,
but not a word about Italy.
Finally, from Gobine on the 20th of June, he wrote,
I do not see anything in the way of your going to Milan
to be with the Visrain.
You had better go there incognito.
You will find it very hot.
This letter did not reach the Empress
until the 1st of July,
and then again her departure was deferred
for two weeks by news of the illness,
of one of her grandchildren at Ex La Chappelle.
As this did not prove serious,
Josephine finally set out on the 16th of July
and reached Milan 12 days later.
Her letter to Ortaunce is worth quoting.
To Queen Orthans at Ex La Chappelle,
Milan, 28 July, 1812.
I was very tired on my arrival here, my dear Ortense.
The pleasure of seeing Augusta has revived me.
Her health is very good,
and her pregnancy is far advanced.
I am with her at the Villa Bonaparte.
I have Eugène's rooms.
You can imagine all the pleasure it gave me
to make the acquaintance of his little family.
Your nephew is very strong, an infant Hercules.
His sisters are extremely pretty.
The elder is a beauty.
She resembles her mother in the height of her forehead.
The younger has a lively and clever face.
She will be very pretty.
I have received here three letters from Ejean,
the last under the date of the 13th July.
His health is very good.
He is still in pursuit of the Russians
without overtaking them.
It is the general hope that the campaign will not
belong. May this hope
be realized.
You do not speak of your health.
I hope that the waters have done you good.
It is the first prayer of a mother
who loves you better than herself.
Josephine
Only three days after Josephine's arrival
there was a fourth grandchild,
the future Empress Emily of Brazil.
Augusta, writes Josephine the same day,
is perfectly well,
and her daughter is superb,
full of strength and health.
Before she had been at Milan a week,
Josephine was already uneasy
and anxious to leave for ex Le Ben.
But she prolonged her stay for a month
because Madame Mare and her brother,
Cardinal Fesh, were at the waters,
and she did not wish to meet them.
At X she found Julie,
good and amiable as usual,
with her sister, the former Desiree Clarie,
who was now the wife of Bernadotte, the Prince Royal of Sweden.
After their departure at the end of September,
she went to her chateau of Prigny for a short stay.
A few days after her arrival, she writes to Artans.
I regret that you are not here with me.
The weather is very fine.
The views of the lake and of Montblanc are magnificent.
It only lacks you at Prinie to appreciate with delight
the full charm of a quiet life.
On the 21st October, her quiet
life at Pregny came to an end, and Josephine set out from Almeson, leaving the good people of Geneva
quite content with her departure as, The kind of life which we have led since she is here does not
agree with our habitudes.
End of chapters 31 and 32.
Chapters 33 and 34 of Napoleon and Josephine, The Rise of the Empire by Walter Geer.
This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
1813 to 1814. The Fall of the Empire
Josephine reached Manmaison on her return from Switzerland the 25th of October the day after the Mallet affair.
She wrote Eugène that the consternation had been general but had not lasted long.
At the end of several hours everything was as calm as before.
The whole plot turned upon the false report of the death of the emperor.
Armed with forged papers and supported only by two battalmers,
of the Paris garrison. This madman succeeded in gaining possession of the post office and the
treasury, and imprisoning Savarie the minister and Pasquay the prefect of police. He was finally
arrested, condemned by a military court and executed. The mallet plot for the first time
clearly revealed to the public the instability of the empire, which was founded only on the glory
and the genius of Napoleon. In this moment of crisis when the conspirators shouted,
the emperor is dead.
Not a voice was raised to cry,
L'Emperor is Mour,
Vive l'emperor.
When the news reached Napoleon, he said,
while the empress was there,
the king of Rome,
my ministers and all the great bodies of the state,
is then man everything here?
The institutions, the oaths,
nothing?
Yes, a man was everything,
and nothing else counted.
Josephine has often been accused
at this crisis in the career of the emperor
of being interested only in her own selfish affairs,
but her letters tell another story.
She writes from Malmaison to her daughter.
You give me new life, my dear Orthans,
in assuring me that you have read the letters
of the emperor to the empress.
She is very amiable to have shown them to you.
I must admit to you that I was very uneasy.
We have also the testimony of her attendant,
Mademoiselle Avriot.
No words can describe the effect produced
by the bulletins which announced
the terrible disasters of Moscow.
the profound anxiety which we saw depicted upon the face of the Empress Josephine contributed above all to make us sad.
Seeing her at these sad moments, it seemed as if she reproached fate, as if she accused heaven of having separated them,
of having withdrawn from Napoleon the safeguard of her presence.
The Parisians had hardly finished reading the terrible 29th bulletin when it became known that the emperor was at the Tullery.
In the midst of the cares and the work which overwhelmed him, he sent Josephine.
Josephine threw outtas his tender remembrances.
As soon as he could find an opportunity, he visited Malmaison.
Although there is much doubt as to the exact date,
it seems to have been at this time during the last week in December
that Josephine persuaded him to let her see the little king of Rome.
The meeting took place at the chateau known as Baguettelle in the Bois de Boulogne.
The child usually took a drive every afternoon in the Bois with his governess,
and on this occasion the Emperor accompanied them on horseback.
Josephine drove over from Malmaison and met them.
This was the only time Josephine ever saw the boy,
and it is the general opinion that this was also her last meeting with Napoleon.
On New Year's Day, Josephine always a prey to superstition noticed the date with alarm.
Have you remarked, she said, that the year begins on a Friday,
and that it is 1813?
It is a sign of great misfortunes.
On leaving the remnants of the Grand Army to return to Paris,
the Emperor had placed Murat in command.
In a letter to the Emperor from Posen,
under the date of the 17th January,
Eugène stated that the King of Naples had left that morning,
in spite of all the efforts made by himself and Bertie to keep him,
and that he himself had provisionally assumed the command
while awaiting the orders of the Emperor.
Josephine was much pleased by the terms in which the Monitre officially announced the change.
the king of naples being indisposed has been obliged to give up the command of the army which he has placed in the hands of the viceroy the latter has more experience in administrating large affairs and he has the entire confidence of the emperor
at the same time the emperor sent eugen the following letter to the viceroy eugene paris twenty two january eighteen thirteen my son take the command of the grand army i regret that i did not leave it to you
at the time of my departure.
I flatter myself that you would have returned more slowly
and that I should not have sustained such immense losses.
The past misfortunes are beyond remedy.
Napoleon
Notwithstanding the terrible Russian disaster,
Napoleon at the beginning of 1813 was still in a position
to save his empire.
He had 250,000 veteran troops in Spain
and 150,000 more in the German fortresses.
If he had abandoned the hopeless,
effort to keep Joseph on his throne, sent Ferdinand back to Spain, and concentrated all of his
forces behind the Elba. He could have met the Russians and Prussians with a seasoned army of 400,000
men, with a reserve force nearly as large in training in the depot of France. He could easily have
defeated the Allies and Austria would never have entered the coalition. The Emperor left Paris
for the front on the 15th of April. In May he gained two brilliant victories at Lutzen and Boutze.
but they were indecisive because he did not have the cavalry to follow them up.
The first week in June he consented to an armistice,
which was finally extended until the 10th of August when Austria joined the Allies.
Two weeks later he won at Dresden his last great victory,
but this too proved indecisive.
In October he was beaten at Leipzig and forced to withdraw behind the Rhine.
This was the poorest campaign ever conducted by Napoleon.
The weakest in conception, the most fertile and blood,
and the most disastrous in its results.
Josephine passed the winter of 1813 very quietly at Malmaison.
While the emperor was in Paris, there were but few callers,
but after his departure in April, they began once more to flock to Malmaison.
The fine weather also made her life more cheerful.
In May she spent several days with her daughter at St. Lu,
and when Artin slept for ex-Lébet in June,
she confided her children to her mother for the period of her absence.
This was a great joy for Josephine, who was a doting grandmother,
whatever may have been her shortcomings as a mother.
This sojourn with their grandmother at Malmaison
made such a profound impression upon the children
that Louis, the future Napoleon III, who was then only five years old,
retraced his recollections of the visit sixty years later
in some memoirs which have remained unpublished.
He writes,
I can still see the Empress Josephine in her salon on the ground floor
smothering me with her caresses, and already flattering my
amour-prope by the attention she paid to my sayings.
For my grandmother spoiled me in the fullest sense of the word,
while on the contrary, my mother, from my earliest infancy,
endeavored to repress my faults and develop my good qualities.
I remember that, arrived at Malmaison,
my brother and I were allowed to do as we pleased.
The empress, who was passionately fond of her plants and her hot-houses,
permitted us to cut and suck the sugar-cane,
and she always told us to ask for anything we wanted when she said this one day on the eve of a fete my brother who was three years older than myself and consequently more sentimental asked for a watch with the picture of our mother
but when the empress said to me louis asked for what will give you the greatest pleasure i asked her to let me walk in the mud with the little ragamuffins let no one think that this request was ridiculous for all the time that i remained in france up to the age of seven years it was
one of my greatest griefs to be obliged to drive into the city with four or six horses.
Josephine, who feared to be scolded by Hortense for the way in which she spoiled the children,
writes, Do not worry about your sons, for they are entirely well. Their color is rose and white.
I can assure you that they have not had the slightest illness since they are here. I am delighted
to have them with me. They are charming. In July, Josephine was shocked to hear of the tragic
death of Madame de Brock, the most intimate friend of Orteens.
In visiting with the Queen, the cascade of Grisie, which Josephine had so much admired two years
before, she slipped upon a wet plank and fell into the Gulf below.
She was a sister of the wife of Marshall Ney and a niece of Madame Campan.
She had been brought up with Artance, married by her, and after the death of her husband
had become her inseparable friend.
Josephine offered to go at once to her daughter if her presence and her care could be of any
used to her, and also sent one of her chamberlains. But Otans did not take advantage of this offer,
and prolonged her stay at X until the middle of August. Upon her return she stopped only a day at
Malmaison and then left with her sons for Dieppe, where she had been ordered to take sea baths.
The departure of the two boys left a great void in the life of Josephine. Their visit was almost
the only pleasure she had during this trying year. In November, the Remusat came to dine at Malmaison,
and brought the news that Louis had written the Emperor,
expressing the wish to become reconciled with him
and not to be separated from him in his hour of misfortune.
Josephine, who never treasured up any grudges,
expressed herself as thinking that this was very praiseworthy
on the part of Louis.
She only feared for her daughter, new torments.
But Otis reassured her on this point.
She wrote,
I am not at all uneasy.
My husband is a good Frenchman.
He proves it by returning to France at a moment
when all Europe declares against her.
He is a worthy man,
and if our characters are not sympathetic,
it is because we have faults which cannot be reconciled.
At this moment, Eugène also gave proofs of devotion
which contrasted strongly with the treachery of Murat and Bernadotte,
who were so closely connected by marriage with the Bonaparts,
and this served also to increase the maternal pride of Josephine.
The middle of October,
Eugène received a letter from his father-in-law,
the king of Bavaria, announcing his adhesion.
to the coalition, and suggesting an armistice with the Army of Italy.
Eugène declined this overture, and in his reply expressed his entire devotion to the Emperor.
Augusta at the same time wrote her father in a similar vein, and in a letter to the Emperor
stated that nothing in the world would ever cause her or her husband to forget their duty
to him.
A month later, an aide-de-con of the King of Bavaria, asked for an interview with the Viceroy,
and presented a letter containing a new offer to assure the future of his family.
once more eugenie refused saying it is useless to deny that the star of the emperor is beginning to pale but it is all the greater reason for those who have received benefits from him to remain faithful
this attitude of eugenne plainly approved by his wife could not but fill josephine and ortense with pride nothing which is good noble and grand can astonish us on the part of our excellent eugenie augusta wrote to her good mother but since yesterday i am still more happy and proud to be the wife of such a man
and to allow you to share my joy i hasten to send you a copy of a letter he wrote me after having refused a crown they offered him if he consented to be an ingra and a coward in fine to betray the emperor like the king of naples
notwithstanding this fine attitude on the part of eugenne the emperor appears to have conceived some doubts of his entire fidelity which perhaps was natural in the midst of so many examples of treason and ingratitude
upon no other basis can we explain the letter he wrote to joseph from no jean the eighth of february eighteen fourteen my brother have this letter delivered personally to the empress josephine i have written her in order that she may write to eugenne upon receipt of this letter of this letter of
which the text has been lost, Josephine wrote her son.
To the Viceroy Eugène, Malmeson, 9 February, 1814.
Do not lose an instant, my dear Egein, no matter what the obstacles, redouble your efforts
to fulfill the order which the emperor has given you.
He has just written me on this subject.
His intention is that you should retire upon the Alps, leaving in Mantua and the strong
places of Italy only the Italian troops.
His letter ends with these words.
france above all france needs all of her children come then my dear son make haste never will your zeal have better served the emperor i can assure you that every moment is precious i know that your wife was arranging to leave milan tell me if i can be of service to her
adieu my dear eugenie i have only the time to embrace you and to repeat to you to come very quickly josepine at that critical time it took the fast
courier a week to go from Paris to Milan, and it was not until the 18th February that Eugène received at Volta this letter from his mother.
He seems quite naturally to have resented this new method of the emperor in transmitting orders to one of his lieutenants through his mother, instead of by the minister of war or the chief of staff.
The tone, almost of supplication used by Josephine, seemed to imply that the emperor doubted his fidelity.
There followed a long correspondence between the viceroy and the emperor for which we,
have no space here. It is all set forth at length in the Memoir of Eugène, to which the
reader is referred. Eugène attempts but with poor success to justify his adhesion to what he
considered to be the letter, if not the spirit of the Emperor's orders. In the meantime, the
allies were steadily drawing near to Paris, which was a hotbed of treason. Even at Malmaison,
although she knew it not, Josephine was surrounded by spies and traitors in her own household.
By decision of the Council of State and the Emperor's own orders,
Mary Louise and the King of Rome were on the point of leaving for Blois.
Ortense, who had been commanded to follow the court,
wrote to her mother announcing the news.
Josephine replied,
to Queen Ortense at Paris, Malmeson, 28 March, 1814.
My dear Ortense, I had courage up to the moment I received your letter.
I cannot think without anguish that I am separating myself from you.
you, God knows for how long a time. I am following your advice. I shall leave tomorrow for Navarre.
I have here only a guard of sixteen men and all are wounded. I shall keep them, but I really have no need
of them. I am so unhappy at being separated from my children that I am indifferent to my fate.
I am troubled only about you. Try to send me news. Keep me informed of your plans and tell me where you go.
I shall at least try to follow you from afar.
Adieu, my dear daughter, I embrace you tenderly.
Josephine
The following morning which was cold and wet,
Josephine left Malmaison with her household.
As she was not sure of finding relays at the posts on route,
she took all her horses and carriages.
In cash she had only about fifty thousand francs,
which she had borrowed from Ortaun's and one or two friends.
In a wadded petticoat were sewn her most value,
diamonds and pearls, while her jewelry cases were packed in the carriages.
It was impossible to carry with her anything more.
She traveled slowly, passing the night at Mount and taking two days for the journey.
She was very well received at Evre.
The authorities offered her a guard of honor at the chateau,
for she had left behind at Malmaison the sixteen wounded soldiers of the Imperial Guard.
34. 1814.
The last days at Malmézschevier.
At Navarre, Josephine found herself entirely out of touch with everything and everybody.
The day after her arrival, she sent her daughter the following letter, the last one which we have
in the collection of Queen Otance.
To Queen Otance at Chartre.
Navarre, 31 March 1814.
My dear Ortense, I cannot tell you how miserable I am.
In the painful positions in which I have found myself, I have had courage.
I shall have it to bear the reverses of fortune,
but I have not sufficient to put up with the absence of my children
and the uncertainty of their fate.
For two days I have not ceased to shed tears.
Send me news of yourself and of your children.
If you have any of Eugène and of his family, let me know.
I very much fear that no news will come from Paris,
as the post from Paris to Evre is suspended,
which has caused many rumours.
Among other things, it is said that the Neill Bridge
has been occupied by the enemy,
this would be very near to malmaison adieu my dear daughter i await your reply to console me i tenderly embrace you as well as your children josephine
hardly was this letter written and despatched when a courier arrived from ortense with the news that paris had capitulated and that the emperor was at fontainebleau then ortense herself suddenly appeared with her children after much hesitation as to whether to leave paris or to remain at nine o'clock on the night of the twilight
29th of March, under the threat of Louis to take her children,
Hortense had decided to set out and rejoin Marie Louise.
She spent the first night at Glatigny near Versailles.
The next morning at an early hour, she went to the trianon,
and later proceeded to Rambouillet.
There she found her brothers-in-law Joseph and Jerome and spent the night.
The following morning she received a courier from Louis,
bearing a formal order from the regent to rejoin her at Plois.
In this, Hortons saw another instance.
of her husband's persecutions.
She notified Louis, Marie-Louise, and the emperor of her refusal to obey,
ordered her carriage and started for Navarre.
At Maiton, she found an escort,
and after dark arrived at a chateau belonging to a member of her household.
At five o'clock the next morning, the first of April,
she again started out, and ten miles from Navarre,
was met by Monsieur de Portales, with some horses sent by her mother.
During the night of the second to third April,
a representative of the Duke de Bassano
arrived as a bearer of definite news from Fotenblou.
He recounted the treason of Marmon,
the occupation of Paris,
and the despair of the emperor.
The scene related by Mademoiselle Cochle is entirely imaginary.
No one had then heard of any plan
to send Napoleon to Elba,
and Josephine could hardly have exclaimed,
but for his wife,
I would go to join him in his captivity.
After this, several days passed without further news.
on the seventh of april josephine wrote to an old friend the countess kaffarelli our hearts are broken at all that is happening and particularly at the ingratitude of the french the papers are full of the most horrible abuse if you have not read them do not take the trouble for they will hurt you
in the meantime at fontainebleau during these days of supreme agony napoleon with an admirable lucidity and an admirable justice was making what may be termed his political
testament and arranging the future of his entire family.
In the treaty signed on the 11th of April by the ministers of the Allied powers, by the
marshals in the name of the emperor, and by all the members of the provisional government,
this treaty, which was the price of his abdication, the Boernet received the greatest
consideration.
To the princes and princesses of the imperial family was attributed a revenue of two millions
and a half francs.
entirely apart from what property they might possess, either real or personal.
Of this sum, Louis was allowed 200,000 francs.
Madame, Elisa and Pauline, each 300,000.
Ortense, 400,000.
And Joseph and Jerome each 500,000.
The allowance of the Empress Josephine was reduced to a million francs,
and she too was permitted to retain all of her property.
By another article it was provided that
Prince Eugène,
Viceroy of Italy,
should receive a suitable establishment
outside of France.
The night of the 12th of April,
Napoleon sought by poison
the death from which he had escaped
on so many fields of battle,
but in vain.
God does not wish it,
he said,
and the following morning
he in turn signed the treaty.
That same day,
the Duke de Berri landed at Cherbourg,
and on route for Paris,
he sent one of the gentlemen
who accompanied him to Manmaison.
To offer to Josephine
a guard of honor, and to assure her that he would be charmed to do everything in his power to be
agreeable to her, as he had for her as much respect as admiration. But Josephine had already
left Navarre for Malmaison. The 16th of April, the Journal de Debbaugh stated,
The mother of Prince Egn has returned to Malmaison. Josephine was far from being pleased with
this form of announcement. Alexander immediately sent one of his attendants to announce his visit for the
following day, and promptly at one-thirty o'clock he arrived.
It was evident that he had called to see Ortense rather than her mother, but he was full of courtesy
and deference for Josephine and gave her all of her titles. After a long call he left just
at the moment that Ortense arrived with her sons. She who was usually so amiable was hardly
so with him. She remained cold, very dignified, and made no reply to the offers which the
czar made for herself and her children. As for the emper, as for the emper. As for the emper,
Josephine, her goodness, her kindness, her frankness all charmed him.
During the past few weeks, Josephine, in her trouble, for once had forgotten to order new gowns,
but now her old desire to please and to charm returned with full force, and she commanded
a number of summer frocks in Batiste and embroidered muslin, such as she formerly wore in the
Beaux-Jour at Malmaison.
As Josephine had expected, Alexander soon returned, but she perceived that the visit was for
Orteans, who again held herself aloof and treated him as one should receive the conquerors of her country.
This resistance, however, only served to increase the desire of Alexander to win her, and he redoubled
his attentions. On the 17th of April when he received news of the events at Paris, Eugène, who
up to that time had held the Austrians in Czech, signed an agreement for a suspension of hostilities,
and took the route for the Alps with the French troops in his army. In a final proclamation, which did not
mentioned the name of the emperor, he made an appeal which can only be considered as a personal
bid for popular support. A people, good, generous, faithful, has rights upon the remainder of my
existence which for ten years past I have consecrated to its service. As long as I am permitted to occupy
myself with its happiness, which was always the dearest concern of my life, I ask for myself
no other future. At the same time Ejean persuaded the Italian troops under his orders,
to send a deputation in his favor to Paris.
But during his absence from Milan, three separate factions had developed,
one favorable to Murat, a second purely Italian,
and a third, the strongest and richest for Austria.
There was an emote at the capital accompanied by pillage and finally a massacre.
When this news reached Mantua, the army acclaimed Eurgen as king of Italy
and wished to march on Milan,
but the viceroy realized that there was no chance against a war.
capital in revolt and Austria which would send her troops there.
I do not wish, he said, to impose myself upon a country which does not desire me,
adding a civil war with all its accompanying evils. The country refuses my support. It is enough.
On the 23rd of April, he signed another convention with the Austrians in which he surrendered
everything, and departed from Munich with his wife and her baby who was only nine days old.
Eugène now had little to expect except under the provisions of the Treaty of Fontainebleau
and the gratitude of Austria fortified by the support of Alexander.
As soon as Josephine knew that he was at Munich, she wrote to urge him to come to Paris,
and on the 9th of May he arrived.
In the meantime, the relations between the Tsar and Ortense had become more cordial.
He was almost a daily visitor at Manmaison,
and was now on terms of intimate friendship with Josephine and her daughter.
he had offered to procure for the queen an independent position in france with an adequate revenue the guardianship of her children and a ducal title the highest that the king could confer his thought was to separate her interests entirely from many dependents on the emperor or his family
the letters patent dated by the king in the eighteenth year of his reign conferred the title of duchess de st luke not on madame louis bonaparte nor on the queen of holland but on mademoiselle de beau arnais
ortense refused to accept this formula i think that it is my duty she said not to allow people to forget that i have been a queen although i do not make it a point of being so called
it was finally arranged that she should be designated as madame de beauarnay and her susceptibilities were satisfied there is little doubt that josephine wished to be confirmed in her title of duchess de navarre but she refused to sign the letter to the king prepared for her by madame de remusse there is reason to think however that she wrote another in which she asked for eugenie the dignity of constable the highest military gift in the power of the king to bestow
eugene also had neglected to conciliate the bourbons on his departure from eunuch he wrote the king to announce his visit for as he said to his wife i could not think of arriving at paris without at once presenting myself to him
he had hardly reached manmaison and embraced his mother and sister before he received a summons to appear at the tuileries when eugenne was announced under the title of marquis de beauarnet it is reported that the king arose from his chair and advanced to meet him cordially extending his hand
he then exclaimed to the person who had presented the viceroy say his highness prince eugene monsieur and add constable of france if such is his good pleasure this report rest
upon the authority of the editor of the Memoir of Prince Eugen and may be true,
it is certain that the Bourbons did everything in their power to detach the Boer Ney
from their adhesion to the Emperor.
On the 14th of May the Tsar came informally to dine with Ortence, who was now settled at St. Lu.
Josephine was present, but there were no strangers except Collin Cour and the wife of Marshal-Nain.
During the drive in open carriages through the park, the Tsar was very kind and amiable,
and expressed himself both Tujain and Otens
as desirous of doing everything in his power
to assure their future.
Josefine had come only upon the urgent request of Otis.
She was sad and discouraged.
She had but little confidence in the promises of the Tsar
and felt that after his departure the Bourbons would do nothing.
She realized better than her children
how little confidence could be placed in royal promises.
When she read two days later in the official journal
that the Emperor of Russia had gone to Saint-Lieu to dine with Prince Eugène, his mother and sister,
her comments were very bitter. There seemed to be a deliberate intention to deny her the position
and rank which had been accorded her. This visit to St. Lu was the beginning of Josephine's illness,
which was to terminate fatally exactly two weeks later. She took a severe cold which she refused
to care for, saying that it was nothing. In the evening she descended for dinner,
clad in one of her lightest decoultie gowns.
After breakfast the following morning, she returned to Malmaison.
Monday, the 23rd of May, the king of Prussia came to call at Malmaison and remained for dinner.
He was accompanied by his two sons, of whom one was later to be known as the Emperor William.
The following day, Josephine had to receive the Russian Grand Dukes, Nicola and Michel.
These official receptions, these visits of ceremony, fatigued her terribly.
In the evening she came to dinner as usual.
Later there was a dance and she opened the ball with the Tsar.
Then they went into the park where they promenaded for a long time and she took more cold.
Wednesday the 25th of May, a small eruption appeared all over her body,
but principally upon her arms and chest.
Eugène and Autans, who were themselves both suffering from colds who were vaguely disturbed,
but far from anticipating a fatal result.
He wrote Augusta that day,
Our mother has been suffering for two days, and this morning she has considerable fever.
The doctor says that it is only Qatar, but I do not think she is at all well.
The following night, her regular physician found her tongue affected and her whole head congested
and applied a blister to her neck.
Friday the 27th of May, Alexander was to have dined with Josephine for the last time before
leaving for London.
On his arrival with several other guests, he found both Josephine and Ergene ill in bed,
and only Otans able to receive the party, who all left early except this are.
Saturday, the illness of the Empress became so grave that there was a consultation of physicians.
Eugenne wrote his wife that he did not think his mother would live through the day.
That night, Josephine begged Ortense, who was nearly worn out to retire and get a little rest.
Sunday the 29th of May, which was with Sunday, it was evident that Josephine was dying.
Her features had sensibly changed, and her respiration was short and difficult.
Ortin sent for Eugène, and at noon Josephine expired in their arms.
Just before her death, the sacraments were administered by the Abbe Bertrand,
tutor of Orthans's children, as Josephine's almoner was absent.
According to legend, the last delirious words of the Empress were,
Napoleon, Elba.
On Monday, the body was embalmed and placed in a lead-cold.
coffin enclosed in oak. The public were now admitted to Malmaison, and it is estimated that
more than 20,000 people passed before the beer. The funeral took place on Thursday the 2nd of June,
when the coffin was taken to the church at Ruehl. All of the sovereigns present at Paris were
represented, and there was a large crowd at the church. The military honors were furnished by a detachment
of the Russian Imperial Guards. Josephine's tomb is at the right hand of the choir of the church.
It is of white marble with a kneeling figure of the Empress in her coronation robes.
The inscription runs simply
A Josephine, Eugenie and Othens, 1825.
There was nothing mysterious about the death of Josephine,
no indication and no suspicion of poison.
Nevertheless, there were rumors that such was the cause of her death.
The autopsy left no doubts as to the origin and the progress of the malady,
a cold not cared for, and aggraved.
aggravated by her imprudence.
Two hours after the death of Josephine in compliance with sovereign etiquette,
Eugène and Ottence left Malmaison for Saint-Lu,
and were not present at the funeral.
Although they sent out the usual notices of the death of their mother,
neither one of them seems to have taken the trouble to inform Napoleon of the event.
He learned the news through a paper sent him from Genoa by a valet whom he had sent to France,
charged with commissions for several persons, including Josephine herself.
at the news of her death writes an eye-witness he appeared profoundly afflicted he shut himself up in his room and saw no one except the grand marshal
a year later before leaving paris for the fatal campaign of waterloo napoleon wished to visit malmaison and was met there by ortense who had not had the courage to return since the fatal day for an hour he walked with artans in the garden talking only of josephine
then he visited one by one the different rooms ending with the chamber where josephine had died here he remained for a long time alone and came out with his eyes filled with tears
poor josephine he said to artense she may have had her faults but she at least would never have abandoned me end of chapters thirty three and thirty four chapter thirty five of napoleon and josephine the rise of
the Empire by Walter Gear. This Librevox recording is in the public domain.
35.
1763 to 1814. Josephine's personality.
As the life of Napoleon will always be associated with the names of three small islands,
Corsica, Elba, and St. Helena, so that of Josephine will ever be connected with Martinique.
There is little of interest in the capital city Fall de France, apart from the Savan,
the large green public square, and there the visitor will be attracted mainly by the beautiful marble statue of the empress.
Sea winds have bitten it. Tropical rains have streaked it. Some microscopic growth has darkened
the exquisite hollow of the throat, and yet such is the human charm of the figure that you almost
fancy you are gazing at a living presence. Perhaps the profile is less artistically real,
statuesque to the point of betraying the chisel. But when you look straight up into the sweet
Creole face you can believe she lives.
All the wonderful West Indian charm of the woman is there.
She is standing just in front of the savann,
robed in the fashion of the First Empire,
with gracious arms and shoulders bare.
One hand leans upon a medallion bearing the eagle profile of Napoleon.
Over the violet space of Summer Sea,
through the vast splendor of azure light,
she is looking back to the place of her birth,
back to the beautiful drowsy toazil.
and always with the same half-dreaming half-plaintive smile,
unutterably touching.
The statue, so lovingly described by Hearn,
may be said to bear about the same relation to the real woman
that the Josephine of romance bears to the Josephine of history.
Since her death 110 years ago,
the legend of Josephine has passed through three phases.
Under the restoration, it was Josephine,
the protector of the immigre,
that all good royalists were called on to lament.
The keynote was struck by the Archbishop of Toul in his funeral oration.
How many unfortunate, condemned by their fidelity to the August family of the Bourbons,
to live in exile from their fatherland, are beholden to her persistent and touching intercession
for their restoration to their families and to the country which saw their birth.
Under the Second Empire, the writers who wished to curry favor with the new emperor
devoted special attention to Josephine, and one would almost believe,
led to believe that he occupied the throne by right of descent from his grandmother the
Empress Josephine rather than as an heir to his uncle the Emperor Napoleon.
Josephine was painted as the sorrowful martyr to necessities of state.
She was the fondly loving wife repudiated after fourteen years of faithful wedlock.
Under the Third Republic, the admirers of the great emperor, less fettered in their views,
have gone as far in the other direction. They denied to Josephine any attachment to Napoleon.
except that of self-interest, and to blame him only for not repudiating her sooner.
As usual, the truth of history lies between these two extremes.
It will always be a moot point how a woman possessed of so little intellect
and endowed with no surpassing physical beauty, managed to gain and retain for 14 years,
the love of a man six years her junior, and that man, Napoleon.
First, with regard to her beauty.
We have innumerable portraits.
of Josephine, for she loved to be painted
and sat to all the celebrated artists
of her day. David, Gerard,
Gros, Isabe, Prudon, and many others.
None of these portraits gives the idea
of a beautiful woman.
The written descriptions of her appearance
are even more unflattering.
It is impossible to forget the picture
of the faded Creole past her prime
endeavoring to hide the ravages of time
by an extravagant use of powder and rouge,
the closed lips which concealed her
bad teeth, all the artifices to supply the deficiencies of nature. But on the other hand,
we have the admissions even of unfriendly observers that her eyes were beautiful, her smile always
charming, her figure slender, supple, well-proportioned, needing no corset to support it, always clothed
in the most perfect taste. To complete the picture, we have the graceful movement of her elegant,
indolent body, for in the words of Napoleon, she was graceful even in going to bed, and the
harmony of her soft, caressing voice, which could soothe and put the emperor to sleep even
when most harassed by the cares of state. All the memoirs of her time are agreed in stating
that Josephine had but little intellect, but they are almost equally in accord in admitting
that she supplied the deficiency by her marvelous savoir faire. Her education had been only rudimentary,
and she never increased her knowledge by reading. There was an excellent library at Malmaison,
and there was always a reader on her staff, chosen more for.
for her beauty than for any other qualification, but no one ever heard of Josephine opening a book
except to read Napoleon to sleep.
Josephine was a great collector, and the chateau of Manmaison was a regular museum of valuable
paintings, choice statuary, and rare objecta. But there is nothing to show that she prized
her collection, except for the value it represented in money. It was only another exhibition of her
mania for spending. It must be admitted, however,
that Josephine loved her flowers and her plants, and her hot-houses and gardens were the finest in Europe.
That Josephine was prodigal and her expenditures of money cannot be denied,
but altogether too much has been made of her debts by Monsieur Masson and other recent biographers.
The matter has already been quite fully covered in these pages,
and it is not necessary to go into it further here.
Napoleon's wrath at the discovery of her debts and the terror of Josephine during these scenes
were both largely assumed.
It has even been said that
Napoleon liked her to be in debt
because it made her utterly dependent on him.
It must be remembered, however,
that as Napoleon once stated,
it is fortunate that the French are
to be ruled through their vanity.
All of the display
and the etiquette of the imperial court
were irksome to Napoleon
with his simple tastes,
but he endured them
because it was part of his policy.
For the same reason,
he expected Josephine to spend lavishly
the handsome allowance he gave her, although with his love of order he did not wish her to exceed
her income. It was all a part of his general policy of fostering the industries of the country,
which has made France what it is today, the leader in the manufacture of articles of luxury and
display in every line. The secret of Josephine's attraction for Napoleon appears to have been
that rare quality which, for lack of a better term, we may call personal magnetism. She was one of
those exceptional characters who seem to possess the natural gift of attracting others while
themselves giving little or nothing in return. But to win all hearts as she did, Josephine at
bottom must have possessed a large fund of human sympathy. All agree in speaking of her affability.
She was gentle and kind, affable and indulgent to all, without respect to persons.
The Josephine of legend is emphatically, La Bon Joesifine. She could never refuse a request,
She was always giving lavishly, indiscriminately.
It was also impossible for her to treasure up grievances against anyone,
even the Bonaparte who did so much to injure her.
With Napoleon's mistresses, she displayed the same lack of resentment.
She received Madame Belesca at Malmeson and lavished affection upon her child.
She made Madame Gazani one of her chosen attendance after her divorce.
Josephine has frequently been accused of loving no one but herself,
but her letters to her children show
that she was a very affectionate and demonstrative mother,
and she was certainly a doting grandmother.
It seems hardly possible that she wasn't sincere,
for that, as one writer puts it,
Josephine's affections were a vigorous expression of herself love.
No one can question the fact of Napoleon's love for Josephine,
which lasted as long as he lived,
and certainly after his return from Egypt,
she was to him a model wife.
She anticipated his every wish.
She never kept him waiting.
She was always ready to accompany him on his journeys.
She went cheerfully through the most arduous social duties,
and exerted herself to conciliate all whom he wished to win to his interests.
From Napoleon she extorted the admiring exclamation.
I win battles.
Josephine wins hearts.
In fact, Josephine was an angeluse.
To win to seduce, by cajolries, by caresses, by soft words.
In short, to please, was the principal aim of her existence.
Even where she had no end to gain, where no self-interest was involved,
she strove to please simply because it gave her pleasure.
It was to please that she embellished her home,
that she spent a fortune on jewels and toilettes,
that she wore herself out with visits, receptions, and journeys,
that she triumphed over her headaches, neglected her colds,
and went to her death.
This explains all.
This is the true key to her care.
This also is the explanation of her falsehoods, for by the testimony of all her contemporaries,
friends and foes alike, Josephine was one of the greatest liars who ever lived.
If she has succeeded in imposing on history, it is largely due to the fact that she imposed
on Napoleon, which in itself is no small feat. He was convinced that she loved only him.
He represents her as the model wife, attentive, affectionate, and devoted. He thinks she is
extravagant, but how elegant and how graceful she is, how beautifully she dresses, how she excels in
everything she does. For him, she is the perfect woman. By a supreme falsehood and this one posthumous,
she leaves with her attendance the impression and with Napoleon the conviction that she dies of love
for him, overwhelmed by the disasters of France and the empire, in despair because she could not
share his fate at Elba, and mollify by her loving tenderness the rigorous.
of his exile.
On the day after his return from Elba,
in March 1815,
he said to Corvizard at the Tuileries,
You let my poor Josephine die.
Then he sent for Oro her regular physician
and demanded the fullest details of her death.
What was the cause of her illness?
Anxiety, chagrin.
You say that she was anxious.
What was the cause of her chagrin?
What had taken place, sire,
the position of your majesty?
"'Ah, then she spoke of me.
"'Often, very often.
"'Good woman, good Josephine.
"'She loved me truly, did she not?'
"'This conviction remained with Napoleon
"'until the end of his life,
"'and in speaking of Josephine at Saint Helena, he exclaimed,
"'She was the best woman in France.'
"'Aside from her two chateau of Malmeson and Brinie
"'and her fine collection of jewels,
"'Josephine left little of value at the time of her death.
In the settlement of her estate, Eugène took Malmaison and assumed the payment of her debts,
while Ottance received Brigny and her jewels, the share of each of her children amounting to about
two million francs when the estate was finally settled. Of all the places closely associated with
the life of Josephine, only Malmaison remains today. During the lifetime of Eugène, a large
part of the estate was cut up and sold in parcels. In June 1829, five years after his death,
in the final settlement of his estate it was found necessary to sell the chateau after passing through several hands it was bought in eighteen sixty one by napoleon the third and made a museum of napoleonic souvenirs
during the franco-prussian war it was pillaged by the germans and damaged by fire finally it was purchased early in the present century by a jewish millionaire who had the generous thought of restoring it as nearly as possible to its former condition and presenting it to the state as a museum of a museum of the country of a museum of a jewish millionaire who had the generous thought of restoring it as a museum of the state as a museum of the state as a museum of
relics of Napoleon and Josephine.
Preigny, which was taken by Ortonce as her portion of the real estate, was sold by her in 1817
for about 100,000 francs. Nearly all of the furniture was removed by Orteens, but the buildings
remain in the same condition as in the time of Josephine. Under the terms of the grant to the
Empress, at her death Navarre passed to Eugen, and from him to his eldest son, August.
In 1834, this prince married the country.
Queen of Portugal, but died at Lisbon less than four months later.
He was succeeded as Duke de Navarre by his brother Maximilian, who married the Grand Duchess
Marie of Russia, daughter of Tsar Nicholas. On his death in 1852, the title was claimed by his
son Prince Nicholas, but the French government refused its assent, on the ground that, as a member
of the imperial family of Russia, he could not swear fidelity to the Emperor of the French.
It was thus that the grandson of Prince Eugé,
was deprived by his cousin Napoleon III of the Duchy erected by Napoleon I, and by virtue
of a clause in the original grant which four successive governments of France had neglected to invoke.
But long before this date, the estate of Navarre had been sold by the heirs of Eugène with
the permission of the government and the proceeds over a million francs invested in French bonds.
On the Sunday following the Battle of Waterloo, the 25th of June 1815, Napoleon left Paris
for the last time and went to Malmaison.
Here, before departing for his final exile,
he spent four days in wandering through the chateau and the park,
as if in search of the beloved shade which in disappearing from his life
seemed to have taken with it his happiness and his fortune.
Such, charming and exquisite, she lives in his memory
to soften his agony and soothe his exile.
And such, after the lapse of a hundred years,
she still appears in the eyes of posterity.
in vain says monsieur masson in vain have we been compelled to tell the truth about her to throw upon her life the light of history the legend still prevails her memory will never suffer from what has been written even from what has been proven
in the dispersal and quick disappearance of the things she loved there remains only the name of a flower the souvenir de malmaison and thus her image and the emblem of her life will be one of these things she loved there remains only the name of a flower the souvenir of malmaison and thus her image and the emblem of her life will be one of these
lovely roses, tender and fragile, bright and necrious, which she loved and named.
When for a brief moment the rose has given us a vision of its grace, a petal loosens and falls,
then another, and another, until finally it is like a fall of fragrant snow, projecting into
the warm atmosphere hardly the repressed vibration of a sigh. But the fragrance of the
withering petals long floats on the air and perfumes the room with this beautiful thought we take our leave of napoleon's charming little creole end of napole and josephine the rise of the empire by walter gear
